vol. 57, no. 1, 2015 Published by NTEU
ISSN 0818–8068
AUR
Australian Universities’Review
AUR Editor Dr Ian R. Dobson, Federation University Australia
AUR Editorial Board Jeannie Rea, NTEU National President Professor Timo Aarrevaara, University of Helsinki Professor Walter Bloom, Murdoch University Dr Jamie Doughney, Victoria University Professor Leo Goedegebuure, University of Melbourne Professor Jeff Goldsworthy, Monash University Professor Ralph Hall, University of New South Wales Professor Dr Simon Marginson, University of London Mr Grahame McCulloch, NTEU General Secretary Dr Alex Millmow, Federation University Australia Dr Neil Mudford, UNSW@ADFA Professor Paul Rodan, Swinburne University of Technology Harry Rolfe, CAPA National President Dr Leesa Wheelahan, University of Toronto
Production Design & layout: Paul Clifton Editorial Assistance: Adrienne Bradley Cover photograph: Trial of Socrates, sculpture by Tom Bass, above the entrance to Wilson Hall, University of Melbourne. Photo by Christopher Biggs, used with permission.
Contact Details Australian Universities’ Review, c/- NTEU National Office, PO Box 1323, South Melbourne VIC 3205 Australia
Editorial Policy
Style
The Australian Universities’ Review (AUR, formerly Vestes) is published by the National Tertiary Education Union (NTEU) to encourage debate and discussion about issues in higher education and its contribution to Australian public life, with an emphasis on those matters of concern to NTEU members.
Use ‘per cent’ rather than ‘%’ in the text. Use ‘%’ in tables and figures where space is constrained.
Editorial decisions are made by the Editor, assisted by the AUR Editorial Board. The views expressed in articles in this publication, unless otherwise stated, are those of the authors and do not necessarily represent the views of the Editor, the Editorial Board or the publisher.
Do not use numbered sections.
AUR is listed on the DIISR (formerly DEEWR and DEST) register of refereed journals.
Contributions Please adhere to the style notes outlined on this page. Contributors should send digital manuscripts in Word format to editor@aur.org.au. Contributions on CD or USB memory stick will also be accepted. Contributions should be between 2,000 and 7,000 words, although longer articles will be considered. All articles should be accompanied by an abstract that would not usually be longer than 150 words. The author’s full contact details should be provided, including email address, telephones and fax. Contributions are sent to a minimum of two referees, in accordance with DIISR requirements for peer blind review.
Book reviews
Satire
www.aur.org.au
Do you have something satirical to say about the Australian higher education sector? Send it in.
Replies and letters AUR welcomes letters of response to articles published in the journal. Longer responses to articles are also encouraged.
NTEU members may opt for ‘soft delivery’ (email notification rather than printed copy) for all NTEU magazines. To access your membership details, log in to the members’ area at www.nteu.org.au. In accordance with NTEU policy to reduce our impact on the natural environment, AUR has been printed using vegetable-based inks with alcohol-free printing initiatives on FSC certified paper by Printgraphics under ISO 14001 Environmental Certification.
Responses should be a maximum of 1,000 words, and should be received within a month after the publication of the journal so that they can be properly considered by the Editor and the Editorial Board for the following issue.
Subscriptions AUR is free to NTEU members on an opt-in basis. Full details at www.aur.org.au/subscriptions. Annual subscription rates (inclusive of GST where applicable) are $71.50 AUD (Australia and NZ), $86.00 AUD (overseas airmail). Overseas payments should be made by credit card or bank draft in Australian currency.
Advertising AUR is published twice a year, in February and September. The current hard copy circulation is approximately 8,000 per issue. Rates are available on application to aur@nteu.org.au.
Environment ISO 14001
Dates thus: 30 June 2010.
AUR publishes articles and other contributions, including short commentary and satire. Articles will be assessed by independent referees before publication. Priority is given to contributions that are substantial, lively, original and have a broad appeal. Responses to previously published contributions are encouraged.
Website
AUR is also available online as an e-book and pdf. Visit www.aur.org.au for details.
Use single quotation marks. Use double quotation marks for quotes within a quote. All quotes of more than 50 words should be indented and placed in a separate paragraph. Authors should ensure that the material cited in the text matches the material listed in the References.
Email: editor@aur.org.au
Fax: +613 9254 1915
Use a single space at the end of sentences.
Although some contributions are solicited by the Editor or the Editorial Board, AUR is anxious to receive contributions independently from staff and students in the higher education sector and other readers.
Books for review should be sent to the Editor. Our policy is to review books dealing either with tertiary education or with matters pertinent to issues in tertiary education. Book reviews should be between 200 and 1200 words; review essays may be longer.
Phone: +613 9254 1910
Use ‘s’ rather than ‘z’ in words such as ‘organise’ (analyse, recognise, etc.).
Archive This issue and previous issues of AUR can be viewed online at www.aur.org.au.
Neither male nor female pronouns should be used to refer to groups containing persons of both sexes. Do not use underlining. Do not use footnotes, endnotes or any headers or footers except for page numbers (bottom of page, centred). Avoid use of abbreviations, except for well-known organisations or processes. Tables and figures should be incorporated into the text close to where they are first referred. In general, ‘tables’ comprise data, and ‘figures’ comprise everything else (graphs, photographs, etc). Tables and figures should have separate numbered sequences, and titles should be above for tables, and below for figures. Figures should be prepared in black and white. Graphs with coloured bars are often illegible in black-and-white print.
References References to be cited according to APA Publication Manual 6th edition (with minor exceptions). References in the text should be given in the author–date style: King (2004) argues ... or as various authors (King, 2004; Markwell, 2007) argue ... Two co-authors should be cited in the text as (Smith & Jones, 2013). More than two authors cite as (Jones et al., 2011). Page references should be thus: (King, 2004, p. 314). Page references should be used for direct quotations. The reference list should be placed in alphabetical order at the end of the paper, utilising the author–date system. For a reference to a book: Gall, M., Gall, J. & Borg, W. (2003). Education Research: An introduction (7th ed.). New York: Allyn & Bacon. For a journal reference: King, D.A. (2004). What different countries get for their research spending. Nature 430, 311–316. For a reference to a chapter in a collection: McCollow, J. & Knight, J. (2005). Higher Education in Australia: An Historical Overview, in M. Bella, J. McCollow & J. Knight (eds). Higher Education in Transition. Brisbane: University of Queensland Press. For a web reference: Markwell, D. (2007). The challenge of student engagement. Retreived from http://www.catl.uwa.edu.au/__data/ page/95565/Student_engagement_-_Don_Markwell_-_30_Jan_2007.pdf Do not include retrieval dates for web references unless the source material may change over time (e.g. wikis).
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015 Published by NTEU
ISSN 0818–8068
Australian Universities’ Review 3
Letter from the editor Ian R Dobson
4
Vale Gough Whitlam, 1916–2014 Paul Rodan
ARTICLES 5
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan, Kerry Tilbrook & Branka Krivokapic-Skoko
45 Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper Michael C Calver
Citation-based metrics are important in determining careers, so it is unsurprising that recent publications advise prospective authors on how to write highly cited papers. But rather than pursuing citations, authors may fare better by following evidence indicating that persistence, a focused research program, good methodology and publishing in relevant journals are more important. 52 Students from Australian universities studying abroad: A demographic profile Steve Nerlich
Recent articles in this journal have raised concerns about the level of happiness and engagement of Australian academics with their work. This study asked teaching and research academics at a regional Australian university to keep time diaries of their days detailing the tasks they engaged in as well as how they felt overall about their day in terms of both emotional satisfaction and workplace effectiveness.
Australia is one of many countries to encourage its students to study abroad and hence develop a global perspective. Traditionally, students who have pursued this option represented a relatively privileged and demographically narrow group. More recently, governments and other agencies have been offering funding support with the aim of ‘democratising’ study abroad.
13 The parlous state of academia: When politics, prestige and proxies overtake higher education’s teaching mission
60 Time for a Western Australian ‘Group of Three’? A speculative essay
Viviane Callier, Richard H Singiser & Nathan L Vanderford
Original and significant research benefits the careers of those running universities and brings prestige to their institution. World class teaching, by and large, does not, and this has important consequences for higher education’s tripartite mission. 17 The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders: Could they be a threat to universities? Chad Perry
Some sociopathic personality traits in managers can derail business organisations. Three of those traits are narcissism, psychopathy and Machiavellianism. Could a leader of a university unit with strong levels of the dark triad traits derail their unit? 26 Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching Helen J McLaren & Paul L Kenny
Teaching academics are under pressure to move away from traditional lecture-tutorial teaching modes to less traditional forms. The flow-on effects for teachers are increased staff-student ratios, changes in student diversity and less face-to-face time, while also being required to meet expectations for increased research output. 34 Evaluating how universities engage school students with science: A model based on the analysis of the literature B J Cridge & A G Cridge
Every year fewer students are electing to take university level science courses, particularly physics. This situation has led universities and employers to try and encourage more students into science subjects through the development of numerous science outreach initiatives such as guest lectures and summer schools.
Michael Turner & Alistair Brown
Analysing the theoretical cost-savings that might flow from a merger of three of Western Australia’s five universities. OPINION 66 Monument to lack: The new university Andee Jones
69 Discuss: If essays are dead, then where does that leave everything else? A response to: Shirley Alexander’s ‘Buying essays: how to make sure assessment is authentic’ Kelvin McQueen
REVIEWS 72 The real Forsyth Saga? A History of the Modern Australian University by Hannah Forsyth. Reviewed by Paul Rodan
74 ‘I’m counting on you…’ (J O’Keefe, 1961) Using Data to Improve Higher Education: Research, Policy and Practice by Maria E. Menon, Dawn G. Terkla & Paul Gibbs (Eds). Reviewed by Dennis Bryant
76 Can’t see the trees for the ideological wood? Education, Privatisation and Social Justice: case studies from Africa, South Asia and South East Asia by Ian Macpherson, Susan Robertson & Geoffrey Walford (Eds). Reviewed by Arthur O’Neill
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
78 Assessing students: do it like this… Improving Assessment in Higher Education: A Wholeof-Institutional Approach by Richard Henry, Stephen Marshall & Prem Ramburuth (Eds). Reviewed by Dennis Bryant
79 Are all postgrads the same? Intercultural Postgraduate Supervision: Reimagining time, place and knowledge by Catherine Manathunga. Reviewed by Helen Song-Turner
81 Student engagement: A marriage made in heaven? Understanding and Developing Student Engagement by Colin Bryson (Ed.), The Staff and Educational Development Series, James Wisdom (series Ed.). Reviewed by Carroll Graham
83 Fight the good fight! Bridging the Divide between Faculty and Administration: A Guide to Understanding Conflict in the Academy by James L. Bess & Jay R. Dee. Reviewed by Dennis Bryant
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
84 The politics of victimhood Knowing Victims: Feminism, agency, and victim politics in neoliberal times by Rebecca Stringer. Review essay by Andee Jones
89 Managerialism? Managerialism: a critique of an ideology by Thomas Klikauer. Reviewed by Christopher Sheil
91 Navigating your way through a professional staff career Managing Your Career in Higher Education Administration by Michelle Gander, Heather Moyes & Emma Sabzalieva. The Universities into the 21st Century Series, Noel Entwistle & Roger King (series Eds). Reviewed by Carroll Graham
93 Education: A ghost story Capitalism: A Ghost Story by Arundhati Roy. Reviewed by Thomas Klikauer
96 Veni, vidi, vici The Wit of Whitlam by James Carleton (Ed.). Reviewed by Paul Rodan
2
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Letter from the editor Ian R Dobson Welcome to a new year. Sad news reached us, in October
the fact that government bureaucrats think that they can
2014, of the passing of Gough Whitlam, admittedly after
assess research quality more readily than they can identify
a pretty good innings, falling just short of notching up
teaching quality. Never mind that research metrics include
a maiden century. Making higher education accessible
subjective assessments of the quality of journal articles
to those previously excluded was but one of his many
based solely on the journal in which they were published,
achievements whilst in office. What short memories those
and that research grants, clearly an ‘input’ to research, are
currently holding the federal reins have, as they connive
dealt with as though they are an output! Within this milieu,
to re-emphasise socioeconomic privilege. Gough is
Michael Calver looks at another research metric: citations,
remembered first and last in this issue, courtesy of Editorial
and suggests that on-going research effort is better than
Board member Paul Rodan (see pp.4 and 96).
trying to write one ‘star’ (i.e. highly-cited) paper.
This issue features papers on a wide range of topics,
Contemporary universities need overseas fee-paying
and reviews of about a dozen recently-published books.
students to balance their under-funded budgets. However,
Among the papers, Duncan, Tilbrook and Krivokapic-
less attention is paid to domestic students going abroad
Skoko examine happiness among academics. What does it
to broaden their experience, even though universities
take to make academics happy?
promote the idea. Steve Nerlich examines this outward
The next couple of papers look at things that might
flow of students, based on several data sources.
not lead to academic workplace happiness. From the
The final paper from among the peer-reviewed articles
US, Callier, Singiser and Vanderford examine the impact
presents a‘hypothetical’,based on the creation of a Western
of ‘politics, prestige and proxies’ on university teaching,
Australian ‘Group of Three’ that could provide a foil to the
whereby research seems to be valued ahead of teaching,
University of Western Australia. On paper, aggregating the
despite the fact that it often costs money to accept an
assets of Curtin, Edith Cowan and Murdoch Universities
external research grant. Chad Perry asks us to consider
would create a potentially powerful entity.
the impact of ‘sociopathic’ leaders. Will this ‘leadership’
This issue’s opinion pieces include one by Andee
attribute that is so common in the commercial world be
Jones that presents further erudition of the way of the
transported to our new era managerialist universities?
university in Australia. Earlier issues of AUR provided
Perhaps it has already happened.
Jones other astute observations about the Australian
Managing teaching (and research) requires a set of skills
sector. Meanwhile, Kelvin McQueen looks at ‘the essay’ (in
that is not always built into staff career development.
terms of student assessment), in light of suggestions that
Helen McLaren and Paul Kenny consider this issue in
the essay is ‘dead’.
the context of the change that is going on in teaching. Traditional or less-traditional?
Finally, the Reviews section should help you decide whether or not to buy or read some recently-published
Belinda and Andrew Cridge look at the important
works. Please let me know if you’d like to review any
matter of attracting and retaining students in the so-called
given book; AUR accepts book reviewing as an important
STEM disciplines of science, technology, engineering and
part of a scholarly career, and has a large reviews section
mathematics. Based on the literature, they consider how
as a consequence.
school students can be attracted to science. Australian
Our thanks go to the authors, blind peer reviewers,
science has a high profile through the efforts of Ian Chubb,
copy editors and the production team that together
Australia’s Chief Scientist, in a country that currently
make Australian Universities’ Review a possibility and a
seems to be governed by a political party that believes we
‘different’ journal to many that are out there.
live in a science-free zone. Even if teaching is undervalued vis-à-vis research, we
Ian Dobson is an Honorary Senior Research Fellow at the
can’t avoid the reality of our university sector. Some would
Federation University Australia, an Adjunct Professional Staff
say that research’s ascendency has been caused in part by
Member at Monash University and editor of AUR.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Letter from the editor Ian R Dobson
3
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Vale Gough Whitlam, 1916-2014 Paul Rodan
While controversy will always attend any assessment of
Whitlam’s implementation of enhanced school funding
Gough Whitlam’s period as prime minister, he was almost
and free tertiary education reflected his abiding faith in
certainly the greatest opposition leader in Australian
the liberating power of education and its contribution, not
political history. It needs to be remembered that when he
only to individual personal growth, but also to effective
took over as federal Labor leader in 1967, the party was
citizenship. His vision that every child should have a desk
in a parlous state, obituaries had been written and some
and a lamp at home for study rings as true today as when
serious observers suggested that only a rapprochement
he enunciated it. Many of those reading this tribute will
with the right wing (Labor breakaway) Democratic Labor
need no reminder of Whitlam’s contribution to their own
Party could save the Australian Labor Party and the two-
educational achievements.
party system. Six years later, Whitlam was in government
Whitlam’s commitment to education and his record in
and the DLP was effectively dead. His reform of the
this policy area established a pattern which persists to this
Party (structure) and its Policies allowed him to make an
day. Whatever the ALP’s ups and downs, polls consistently
effective pitch to the third P: the People.
identify Labor as the party better equipped to deal with
Pre-Whitlam Labor contained a strong anti-intellectual streak which meant that while university-educated
education policy, an achievement whose origins can be traced to the Whitlam era.
people could be found in pockets of the party, they were
Whitlam’s faith in the power of reason and argument
not always made to feel welcome. Whitlam’s predecessor
echoed the best intellectual traditions and one suspects
Arthur Calwell saw the party in blue-collar terms and
how contemptuously he would have viewed modern
seemed to hold members from other backgrounds in
focus-group-driven public policy. Education in Australia
barely disguised contempt – ironical given that he had
has had no greater friend and advocate than Gough
held a white collar public service job himself. Moreover,
Whitlam. We will not see his like again.
Labor’s
residual
racism
(personified
by
Calwell’s
passionate defence of the White Australia policy) was
Paul Rodan is an adjunct professor in the Swinburne Institute
hardly likely to appeal to young voters (nor to some older
for Social Research, Swinburne University of Technology, and
ones) looking for a progressive and principled alternative
a member of the editorial board of Australian Universities’
to nearly two decades of conservative party dominance.
Review.
By contrast, Whitlam not only welcomed the universityeducated into the ALP; he sought their contribution in detailed policy formulation.
4
Vale Gough Whitlam, 1916-2014 Paul Rodan
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan, Kerry Tilbrook & Branka Krivokapic-Skoko Charles Sturt University
Happiness research is a rapidly-growing area in social psychology and has emphasised the link between happiness and workplace productivity and creativity for knowledge workers. Recent articles in this journal have raised concerns about the level of happiness and engagement of Australian academics with their work, however there is little research on the activities Australian academics conduct during a typical day and how these activities affect happiness or productivity. We asked teaching and research academics at a regional Australian university to keep time diaries of their days detailing the tasks they engaged in as well as how they felt overall about their day in terms of both emotional satisfaction and workplace effectiveness. Supporting the notion of intrinsic motivation for academic work, we found a strong relationship between happiness and self-reported effectiveness. We found that research activities made academics happier with their days and that time fragmentation was a major driver of unhappiness. However we also uncovered a tension between the activities which make academics happy and those activities which made academics feel productive. Keywords: happiness, academic happiness, academic productivity
Are Australian academics happy?
‘enthusiasm’ as an academic’s engagement with activities involved in academic work and cast doubt on
Australian academics appear to be an unhappy lot. In
whether many of the recent changes in the Australian
recent surveys of academics such as the NTEU’s survey at
university sector have been conducive to feelings of
University of Western Sydney (Lazarsfeld Jensen & Morgan,
enthusiasm in academics.
2009), academics have expressed high levels of intention
While we may have solid data about the unhappiness
to leave the sector in the near future (Bexley, James &
of Australian academics, we do not possess the
Arkoudis, 2011), and academics have expressed low levels
empirical studies necessary to reveal the reasons for
of satisfaction with current university leadership (Coates,
this unhappiness. While Australian universities might be
Dobson, Goedegebuure & Meek, 2010).
becoming increasingly managerial, governance-driven
A recent Australian Universities’ Review article
and more bureaucratic, what particular aspects of the
(Martin, 2011) has placed the academic workplace
recent changes in universities are causing higher levels of
within our new understanding of the link between
unhappiness in Australian academics? Is it the managerial
work and happiness. In a related article Freudenberg
direction in which universities appear to be headed, or is
and Samarkovski (2014) introduced a concept of
it something else entirely?
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan et al.
5
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
What is important for happiness in the academic workplace?
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Beyond experiences of flow, autonomy, mastery and purpose, for Amabile (1983; 1998), intrinsic motivation is a major driver for knowledge workers’ happiness and
Studies in happiness research – summarised in Martin
productivity. Intrinsic motivation enables academics to
(2011) – have stressed the importance of attitudes and
derive pleasure from the task or work itself, much as flow
activities to personal happiness rather than monetary
does, and so the successful execution of the task becomes
rewards.A large increase in income or wealth can generate
the personal goal. This concept of intrinsic motivation is
a temporary increase in happiness. However, over longer
similar to Maslow’s (1970) view of self-actualisation. We
periods of time, happiness generated in this way falls back
might expect then that academics are happiest when they
to a natural state or set point for each person. The only
feel most productive.
means of permanently changing personal happiness is to change a person’s attitudes or daily activities.
Yet Robinson (1999) argues that modern education systems, at secondary and tertiary levels, are actively
If daily activities determine happiness, what do
stifling productivity through bureaucracy and through
Australian academics do on a day-to-day basis and how do
constant evaluation and audits. These organisational
these activities affect their happiness? Csikszentmihalyi
structures stifle the autonomy, spontaneity and flexibility
(1990; 1996) developed the concept of flow – the
necessary to be creative (Mumford, Scott & Strange, 2002)
feeling of transcendence which accompanies intense
and thus they work in a spirit contrary to the intrinsic
concentration on a task – and found the concept to be
motivation of these workers.
applicable across a wide range of activities. It is these experiences of flow which could lead to happiness in the workplace. As an academic, Martin (2011) explained that
Happiness, creativity and work fragmentation
the greatest opportunities to enter a flow experience would occur during research activities, while doubting
To experience flow and to achieve feelings of mastery,
that flow experiences would be found within teaching
academics would need focused periods of time to
or administrative tasks. Thus Martin’s opinion was that
concentrate on individual tasks whether in research or
research activities would increase the happiness of
teaching. The descriptions of the academic workplace
academics through flow, while teaching-related or
in Currie (1996), Anderson, Johnson and Saha (2002)
service activities would not. However there are other
and Lazarsfeld Jensen and Morgan (2009) suggest that
positive values in academic work such as collegiality,
the opportunities for flow through long periods of
social networking and assisting others from which
uninterrupted time spent on a single task would be
academics may draw happiness, so the relationship
minimal during a typical academic’s day in a modern
between
happiness
and
academic work may be a complex one. Pink related of
(2009) the
professionals,
monetary to
feelings
likewise happiness not
rewards, of
to but
autonomy,
mastery and purpose. For
university due to emails,
Whilst in a creative state whether writing a paper, devising an experiment or preparing their teaching materials, academics need time away from distraction and interruptions to reach that flow state. Yet do modern universities allow much opportunity for this sort of free time?
Pink a relatively autonomous
phone
calls
and
other
interruptions. Creative
workers
need
time to drift, reflect, ponder and dream. They need time for their ideas to take shape and materialise (Mintzberg, 1998). Whilst in a creative state whether writing a paper,
academic may not set the
devising
an
experiment
goals for their work, for example quality research and
or preparing their teaching materials, academics need
quality teaching, but the academic would be able to
time away from distraction and interruptions to reach
determine in a large part how those goals are achieved.
that flow state. Yet do modern universities allow much
Mastery is the opportunity to apply an academic’s
opportunity for this sort of free time? Amabile’s (1998)
specific skills to particular problems, which would create
article in Harvard Business Review entitled ‘How to Kill
experiences of flow for the academic. Finally, purpose is
Creativity’ points out that modern organisations do not
the alignment of the academic’s personal goals with the
set out to kill creativity but do so unintentionally as a
goals of the institution at which the academic works.
by-product of maximising business imperatives through
6
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan et al.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
‘coordination, productivity, and control’ (Amabile, 1998, p. 77). These measures can destroy the autonomy and free
E R
S I
T
’
R
Activity
O’Conaill and Frohlich (1995) found that, 41 per cent of
Weekday
Weekend
the time, employees do not resume their original task after an interruption. Interruptions harm productivity of ongoing tasks due to cognitive issues associated with context switching, recollection time and an increased potential for errors, and, for highly intellectual tasks, the costs of interruptions are higher (Sykes, 2011; McFarlane & Latorella 2002). Czerwinski, Horvitz and Wilhite (2004) found that disrupted activities took over twice as long to complete as uninterrupted ones and that interrupted tasks comprised 4.5 hours out of a 40 hour work week, or 11.2 per cent of the work week, while MarulandaCarter and Jackson (2012, p. 89) reported that ‘five minute email interruptions cause a task to take one-third longer than completing a task without email interruptions’. The productivity cost of an interruption comes in the form of the extra time required to return to the same point in the
E V
I
E
W
Average working hours per day (hr)
There is increasing empirical evidence from studies of workers’ performance. In the context of high-tech firms,
E S
Table 1: Summary of daily activities for six teachingresearch academics at a regional university over a typical session
time necessary for creative work. knowledge workers that fragmented work patterns hurt
I
% of Average Weekday (%)
% of Average Weekend (%)
Communicating with students
1.8
0.7
19.0
13.2
Subject administration
2.1
1.6
22.1
30.2
Subject preparation
0.8
0.4
8.4
7.6
Subject delivery
0.4
0.1
4.2
1.9
Research
2.8
2.0
29.5
37.7
Service and general administration
1.6
0.5
16.8
9.4
Total hours
9.5
5.3
100.0
100.0
Number of recorded days
562
110
562
110
interrupted task. The concepts of monochronic and polychronic
survey was undertaken in which teaching and research
time – being actively involved in two or more activities
academics were asked to produce time diaries of their
simultaneously (Bluedorn, Kaufman & Lane, 1992)
activities for the whole of one session out of a year.
–
behaviour
This survey took place at a large regional university
literature have likewise identified a productivity cost for
with an emphasis on distance education. The academics
interruptions. Frei, Raciot and Travagline (1998) found out
provided an hour-by-hour breakdown of their activities
that monochronic behaviour (doing one thing at a time)
and self-reported their emotional well-being and work
of faculty members at a private college in the US was
effectiveness. Each academic provided on average 100
positively and significantly correlated with an academic’s
days’ worth of time diaries.
developed
within
the
organisational
research output, measured by the number of publications
The time diaries were collected from six teaching and
and number of research projects in progress for the
research academics at lecturer and senior lecturer levels.
academic.
The workload models at this university assume these
We might expect then that there are two adverse
academics devote 60 per cent of their time to teaching,
effects of time fragmentation on the personal happiness of
30 per cent of their time to research and the remaining
academics. A direct effect would be through prevention
10 per cent to administration and service. Two other
of flow as an academic under constant interruption jumps
academics were included in the original sample however
from one task to another during the day. There may also
these academics were performing in an administrative role
be a secondary effect through the consequent reduced
as course managers in addition to their academic roles.
productivity coupled with intrinsic motivation in their
The time diaries for these two administrator-academics
work, leading to lower levels of happiness for the academic.
were sufficiently different from the other six traditional research-teaching academics that it was decided to
What do academics do at regional universities?
exclude them from the research. The time diary sheet to be filled out was a 24 hour time diary and included the following main categories of daily
In order to investigate how the typical daily activities of
activities (see Appendix 1 for a complete listing):
Australian academics affect happiness or productivity, a
• Communicating with students including face-to-face
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan et al.
7
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
meetings, email, telephone, subject forums or another form.
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Table 2: Self-reported happiness and effectiveness of academics Weekday
• Subject administration including grading of assignments
Weekend
and exams, processing student forms, completing
Average happiness
1.34
1.51
subject reviews or other subject-related compliance.
Average effectiveness
1.40
1.47
Number of recorded days
504
105
• Subject preparation including developing lectures, tutorials or online materials. • Subject delivery for lectures, tutorials or online
Note: An academic’s happiness and effectiveness for each day are reported on a scale of 0 (‘Poor’), 1 (‘OK’) and 2 (‘Good’).
presentations related to a subject. • Research including reading, writing, preparing grant
days were concentrated around subject administration
applications, supervising doctoral students, meetings
(usually marking) and research, with a smaller proportion
related to research, reviewing or other research-related
of the working day devoted to other types of activities.
administration.
At the end of each day the academics assessed the
• Service and general administration including meetings,
overall day by answering two questions ‘How was your
course- or discipline-related research, general admin-
day emotionally?’ and ‘How effective were you today?’
istration or emails.
The possible responses were ‘Good’, ‘OK’ and ‘Poor’,
These activities and sub-categories were set out on the
which were coded as ‘2’, ‘1’ and ‘0’. In our measure of
time sheets, and academics were asked to indicate for
happiness, we look at the activities which lead to the
each hour the activity or activities which largely occupied
academics reporting a ‘Good’ day. The average levels
that hour. Where multiple activities were reported in an
of reported happiness and effectiveness are set out in
hour, the academic’s time was assumed to have been
Table 2. We use the academic’s emotional satisfaction
split equally between the reported activities. These sub-
for the day as an indicator of ‘happiness’ for that day. In
categories of activities – for example, ‘grant writing’ or
particular we are interested in the factors which lead
‘lecture delivery’ – were then summed up to arrive at the
to the academic indicating that this was a ‘Good’ day
total hours spent on more general categories of activities
emotionally. Admittedly our happiness measure relates
– for example, ‘research’ or ‘subject delivery’. A summary
to retrospective happiness as opposed to an immediate
of the time diary data is contained in Table 1 showing the
report of happiness as measured in the experience
allocation for the general categories of activities.
sampling method of Larson and Csikszentmihalyi (1983).
As this university has a high proportion of distance
Our intention was to allow academics to provide an
education subjects, these academics are probably unusual
overall assessment of their day rather than an assessment
compared with many other Australian academics. Hours
of a momentary emotional state. We also gave academics
devoted to subject administration and communications
an opportunity to provide a qualitative reflection on their
with students would most likely be higher and subject
day within their time diary. We were concerned that this
delivery hours lower for these academics than for
time for reflection would not have been possible within
academics at institutions with more traditional lectures
the working day using an experience sampling method.
and tutorials to internal classes.
It is interesting to note the higher levels of happiness
Working days typically included on average one
(and effectiveness) for academics while working on the
weekend day each week (110 weekend days out of the
weekends. We will explore this finding, and provide some
total of 670 reported days). An average work week is
possible explanations, later in the paper.
imputed then to be five weekdays at 9.5 hours plus
The literature has emphasised the deleterious nature
weekend day at 5.3 hours or a 52.8 hour work week.This
of time fragmentation on workplace productivity. The
estimated work week comes within the range of the 51
question arises about how we go from hourly time
hours per week for senior lecturers from Coates et al.
diary data to an explicit measure of the fragmentation
(2009).A high proportion of these hours were undertaken
of an academic’s work day when there is no commonly
outside the traditional 9am-5pm working day. For these
accepted measure of time fragmentation in the literature.
academics, the break-down of their activities roughly
As a measure of time fragmentation we use the concept
reflected the 60-30-10 distribution of hours between
of ‘fractionalisation’ developed in economic theory
teaching, research and administration in their workloads,
(Mauro 1995; Collier & Hoeffler 2004). This measure
although it seems unclear where administration might
was developed to provide an indicator of the degree of
factor into the calculations in its various forms. Weekend
cultural division within a country.
8
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan et al.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
Table 3: Results of a logit analysis of an academic reporting a ‘Good’ day emotionally and for effectiveness. Dependent variable:
Stating a ‘Good’ day emotionally as an academic
Stating a ‘Good’ day for effectiveness as an academic
Odds Ratio
Odds Ratio
2.13
3.89
3.20
1.09
Subject delivery
0.41
31.75**
6.85*
0.80
3.50
0.92
Indicated a ‘Good’ day for effectiveness
Pseudo-R2
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
day. There is some evidence for this, as the average level of fractionalisation differs between weekdays (0.37) and weekends (0.14), and only 10 per cent of weekdays were days devoted to a single activity, while almost 60 per cent of weekends were devoted to a single activity. Possible contributing factors for the higher levels of happiness reported on the weekends may be the lower fractionalisation of tasks for those days and the ability to
Work happiness and effectiveness for academics If academics are seeking flow in their activities in the workplace, and flow is more likely to be achievable in research activities than in teaching or administration, we should expect then that academics would be happier on
82.9**
days when they undertook research activities than on
Indicated a ‘Good’ day emotionally Fragmentation of the day
T
the days.
Communication with students Subject administration
Service and general administration
S I
concentrate on a single activity for a high proportion of
Proportion of day spent on activities:
Research
E R
81.49** 0.13*
2.04
0.53
0.51
Statistically significant at levels **p<.01, *p<.05; Number of observations: 609 Note: Observations on subject preparation were dropped as that activity had no statistically significant relationship with reported happiness for the academic’s day and to avoid having a combination of independent variables (the proportion variables) sum to one.
days when they undertook teaching and administrative activities. Likewise if academics prefer days which are not fragmented in terms of the types of activities undertaken, we would expect lower levels of happiness to be associated with higher levels of fractionalisation for the day. Following Amabile (1983; 1998), accepting that academics are intrinsically-motivated workers, we would expect to see a strong relationship between an academic’s happiness rating for a day and the academic’s effectiveness rating for that day. In Table 3 we present the results of logistic regressions
Fractionalisation is a number between 0 (low) and 1
relating the probability of an academic reporting a ‘Good’
(high), which is intended to measure how disjointed a
day in terms of emotional satisfaction and in terms of
day is in terms of the tasks carried out during the day.
effectiveness to the types of activities engaged in during
If we consider the fractions of the day devoted to the
the day, the fractionalisation of the day and on whether
broad category of tasks, then a fractionalisation level of
the academic also indicated a ‘Good’ day in terms of the
0 indicates a day devoted entirely to one type of activity,
other rating of that day. In this table the odds ratios for
such as a ‘research day’ devoted entirely to research
the different explanatory variables are presented, as well
activities. A day devoted 90 per cent to one task and 10
as the statistical significance. A maximum-likelihood logit
per cent to a second is calculated to be less fractionalised
regression (Pampel 2000) was conducted using the STATA
than a day devoted 50 per cent to one activity and 50 per
11 software package (StataCorp 2009) to ascertain the
cent to the second. Our measure of time fragmentation is
factors which made the participating academics more
this calculated fractionalisation for the day. This indicator
likely to indicate a ‘Good’ emotional or effectiveness
will take on the value 0 if one activity engages the entire
rating for that day.
day and a number close to 1 if the day includes a large
The odds ratios might need some explaining, but the
number of separate activities, none of which individually
concept is relatively straightforward. The odds ratio
occupy a large portion of the day.
indicates whether a higher value or a lower value for
If academics are intrinsically motivated and work
one of the explanatory variables for that day would be
fragmentation reduces effectiveness, then we might
associated with a higher probability of the academic
expect that an academic’s happiness value for a day is
indicating a ‘Good’ day for that day. If the odds ratio is
negatively related to the fractionalisation value for that
larger than one, then this indicates that higher levels for
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan et al.
9
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
the explanatory variable are associated with a higher
of their work days and to record their assessment of
probability of indicating a ‘Good’ day. If the odds ratio is
each day in terms of their emotional satisfaction and
less than one, then this indicates that higher values for
effectiveness during the day. A logit regression found a
the explanatory variable are associated with a lower
strong, positive relationship between the proportion of
probability of indicating a ‘Good’ day.
their days spent on research and the happiness of these
The first column of Table 3 presents the results of a logistic regression of indicating a ‘Good’ day in terms of
academics and a strong, negative relationship between the fragmentation of an academic’s day and their happiness.
emotional satisfaction. There are positive and statistically
Intrinsic motivation of the academics in our data
significant relationships between the probability of an
was apparent in that participants were happiest on
academic indicating a ‘Good’ day and the proportion of
the weekends when they had more unregulated, less
the day spent on research-related activities and also on the
fragmented time and could devote large amounts of
academic’s effectiveness rating for the day. None of the
time to research tasks. This willingness to work on
other activities had a statistically significant relationship
weekends suggests work overload and also a loyalty to
with the emotional rating for the day given by the
their professional ethos. In fact, when our participants
academic, although the proportion of the day devoted
had longer hours on the task they may have been more
to communicating to students, subject administration
efficient due to lack of other competing demands and at
and to service and general administration had a positive
the same time more creative due to greater focus.
but statistically insignificant impact on the probability
What policies at the university level or behaviours at
of declaring a ‘Good’ rating for the day. There was a
the individual level could boost the happiness of Australian
negative and statistically significant relationship between
academics as a workforce? The findings here suggest
the fractionalisation of the day (representing the work
that, for a teaching and research academic, the ideal day
fragmentation for that day) and the probability of the
is a long day spent entirely on research activities without
academic reporting a ‘Good’ day.
the interruptions of administrative or teaching tasks.
It should be kept in mind that we have measured the
Academics can individually act to create these types of days
proportion of the day spent on particular activities, such
for themselves, or can carve out smaller portions of a week
as research, service or subject administration, and that
to be devoted regularly to research, and the literature from
these proportions have to sum to one for each day.A larger
the work fragmentation in technology workers suggests
proportion of the day spent on one task will necessarily
that there are large personal gains to be made from this.
mean that the proportion spent on other tasks must
However these attempts by individual academics to reduce
decline. Our measure of time fragmentation looks only at
work fragmentation are at the mercy of demands from
the proportion of the day involved in each activity.As such
the university, administrative staff and the calendaring of
this measure might miss the sequencing of the day and
teaching activities and administrative functions.
the precise timing of interruptions such as a phone call. A
A more comprehensive attempt would be to design
different measure of time fragmentation may be a valuable
university systems to facilitate the creation of research-
topic for future research in this area.
only periods for academics. Altering employee time-
The second column of Table 3 presents the results of
use and facilitating the introduction of uninterrupted
a logistic regression of indicating a ‘Good’ day in terms
‘quiet time’ has been noted in the sociology of work
of effectiveness. A positive and statistically significant
time literature (Perlow, 1999) as very effective in making
relationship was found between the proportion of the day
employees more effective. One possible implementation
spent on subject delivery and the academic’s emotional
would be for the class scheduling systems to block out
satisfaction rating for that day. Research activities were
teaching-free periods such as for particular afternoons
found to be positively related to happiness but not to
within a week or even entire days. Another solution
self-reported effectiveness. As was found in the happiness
might be that administrators are requested not to send
regression, the academics’ reported levels of happiness
administrative requests to academics on certain days of
and effectiveness for the day were highly correlated.
the week. A trade-off might be to expect academics to respond promptly to administrative requests outside
Conclusion
those excluded times.
We asked teaching and research academics at a regional
and subject delivery activities on happiness and
Australian university to fill out time diaries of the activities
effectiveness for these academics might seem puzzling.
The contrast found between the impact of research
10
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan et al.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
Ideally intrinsically-motivated academics should have an alignment between workplace effectiveness and happiness. However while doing research activities made these academics happier, research activities did not make the academics feel effective for those same days. Likewise while doing subject delivery made academics feel they were effective, subject delivery activities did not make the academics feel happy about their days. This finding suggests a tension between the aims of the university and the aims of these academics – a violation of the sense of purpose which Pink (2009) stressed as important for professionals. The completion of a teaching task provides a feeling of effectiveness (and thus achievement) for the intrinsically-motivated academic, however the same academic is aware that long-term job tenure and promotion relies on research outcomes rather than teaching ones, so this achievement does not lead to happiness. This finding may also be due to the underlying problem of establishing a sense of achievement within a longterm task of research as opposed to a short-term task of delivering a lecture. There is often a long delay between the performance of a research task, such as the completion of a literature review, and the successful external signal of that task, such as receiving an acceptance from a journal or winning a research grant. In contrast, the sense of achievement when completing a teaching task is immediate. A challenge lies then in creating a sense of immediate achievement within research activities, which may themselves generate external signals of achievement only a few times a year. A first step may be for academics themselves to celebrate micro-successes such as finishing a literature review or submitting a paper to a conference or a journal. A limitation of this paper is that the time diary data was gathered for a limited number of academics at a single Australian institution and thus there is a concern over the generalisability of the results. The authors intend to conduct a wider survey in the future and teaching-research academics are requested to contact the authors if interested
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
References Amabile, T. M. (1983). The Social Psychology of Creativity. New York: SpringlerVerlag. Amabile, T. M. (1998). How to kill creativity. Harvard Business Review, 76, 76-87. Anderson, D., Johnson R. & Saha L. (2002). Changes in Academic Work: Implications for universities of the changing age distribution and work roles of academic staff. Canberra: Department of Education Science and Training. Bexley, E., James, R. & Arkoudis, S. (2011). The Australian Academic Profession in Transition. Canberra: Department of Education, Employment and Workplace Relations. Bluedorn, A.C., Kaufman, C.F. & Lane, P.M. (1992). How many things do you like to do at once? An introduction to monochronic and polychronic time. The Executive, 6(4), 17-26. Coates, H., Dobson, I., Edwards, D., Friedman, T., Goedegebuure, L. & Meek, L. (2009). The attractiveness of the Australian academic profession: A comparative analysis. ACER Research Briefing. Retrieved from http://research.acer.edu.au/ cgi/viewcontent.cgi?article=1010&context=higher_education. Coates, H., Dobson, I., Goedegebuure, L. & Meek, L. (2010). Across the great divide: what do Australian academics think of university leadership? Advice from the CAP survey. Journal of Higher Education Policy and Management, 32(4), 379-387. Collier, P. & Hoeffler, A. (2004). Greed and grievance in civil war. Oxford Economic Papers, 56(4), 563-595. Csikszentmihalyi, M. (1990). Flow: The psychology of optimal experience. New York: Harper & Row. Csikszentmihalyi, M. (1996). Creativity: Flow and the psychology of discovery and invention. New York: Harper Collins. Currie, J. (1996). The effects of globalisation on 1990s academics in greedy institutions: Overworked, stressed out and demoralised. Critical Studies in Education, 37(2), 101-128. Czerwinski, M., Horvitz, E. & Wilhite, S. (2004). A diary study of task switching and interruptions. Proceedings of the SIGCHI Conference on Human Factors in Computing Systems, 175-182. ACM. Frei, R. L., Raciot, B. & Travagline, A. (1999). The impact of monochronic and Type A behavior patterns on research productivity and stress. Journal of Managerial Psychology, 14(5), 374–387. Freudenberg, B. & Samarkovski, L. (2014). Enthusiasm and the effective modern academic. Australian Universities’ Review, 56(1), 22-31. Larson, R., & Csikszentmihalyi, M. (1983). The experience sampling method. New Directions for Methodology of Social & Behavioral Science, 15, 41-56. Lazarsfeld-Jensen, A. & Morgan, K. (2009). Overload: The role of work-volume escalation and micro-management of academic work patterns in loss of morale and collegiality at UWS: The way forward. Melbourne: National Tertiary Education Union.
in participating in or assisting with a future trial.
Martin, B. (2011). On being a happy academic. Australian Universities’ Review, 53(1), 50-56.
Roderick Duncan is a senior lecturer in the School of Accounting and Finance at Charles Sturt University, NSW.
Marulanda-Carter, L. & Jackson, T. W. (2012). Effects of e-mail addiction and interruptions on employees. Journal of Systems and Information Technology, 14(1), 82-94.
Kerry Tilbrook is a lecturer in the School of Management and
Maslow, A. (1970). Motivation and Personality. 2nd ed. New York: Harper & Row.
Marketing at Charles Sturt University.
Mauro, P. (1995). Corruption and growth. Quarterly Journal of Economics, 110(3), 681-712.
Branka Krivokapic-Skoko is an associate professor in the School of Management and Marketing at Charles Sturt University. vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
McFarlane, D.C. & Latorella, K.A. (2002). The scope and importance of human interruption in human-computer interaction design. Human-Computer Interaction, 17(1), 1-61.
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan et al.
11
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
Mintzberg, H. (1998). Covert leadership: notes on managing professionals. Harvard Business Review, 76, 140-148. Mumford, M.D., Scott, G.M. & Strange, J.M. (2002). Leading creative people: Orchestrating expertise and relationships. The Leadership Quarterly, 13(6), 705-750. O’Conaill, B. & Frohlich, D. (1995). Timespace in the workplace: Dealing with interruptions. ACM Conference Companion on Human Factors in Computing Systems, 262-263.. doi: 10.1145/223355.223665.
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
I
E
W
Communicating with students • By phone/Skype • By forums/announcements
Perlow, L.A. (1999). The time famine: Toward a sociology of work time, Administrative Science Quarterly, 44(1), 57–81.
• Marking assignments
Pink, D.H. (2009). Drive: The surprising truth about what motivates us. New York: Riverhead Books.
• Entering grade-sheet
Sykes, E. (2011). Interruptions in the workplace: A case study to reduce their effects. International Journal of Information Management, 31(4), 385-394.
E V
• By email
• By face-to-face
StataCorp (2009). STATA: Release 11. College Station: StataCorp.
R
Appendix 1: Categories of academic activities recorded in the time diaries
Pampel, F.C. (2000). Logistic Regression: A Primer. Thousand Oaks: Sage Publications.
Robinson, K. (1999). All Our Futures: Creativity, culture and education (The Robinson Report). Canberra: Department for Education and Employment.
’
Subject administration • Marking exams • Setting up subject websites • Setting up subject outlines • Moderation • Subject coordination Subject preparation • Developing lectures • Developing tutorials • Developing exams • Developing online content • Developing materials Subject delivery • Delivering lectures/seminars • Delivering tutorials/labs Research • Research administration • Reviewing/refereeing • Reading literature • Writing • Grant preparation • Meetings for research • Thinking/planning/general research • Supervision of PhD/DBA students Service • Committee attendance • Course/discipline administration • Community/professional engagement • Professional development/training • General admin/internet/email Travel for ____________ Conversations with colleagues Other (include category)
12
Does academic work make Australian academics happy? Roderick Duncan et al.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
The parlous state of academia When politics, prestige and proxies overtake higher education’s teaching mission Viviane Callier The Ronin Institute, New Jersey
Richard H Singiser Clayton State University, Georgia
Nathan L Vanderford University of Kentucky
Original and significant research benefits the careers of those running universities and brings prestige to their institution. World class teaching, by and large, does not, and this has important consequences for higher education’s tripartite mission. Most notably, emphasis on the research mission of major higher education institutions dwarfs that of the teaching mission and this is to the detriment of teachers and students. Policy interventions are needed to address this discrepancy. Keywords: higher education, administration, research mission, teaching mission, policy intervention
It is no secret that in the last several decades, the numbers
or service per 100 students only grew by 18 per cent
of those running universities (referred to here as ‘academic
(Goldwater Institute, 2010). To take an extreme example,
administrators’) have increased dramatically whereas the
during this period, at Arizona State University, the number
growth in the number of tenure track academics (‘faculty’
of academic administrators per 100 students increased by
in US parlance) has been only modest, and the trend is
94 per cent whereas the number of employees engaged
projected to continue (Occupational Outlook Handbook,
in teaching, research and service per student actually
Postsecondary Administrators, 2014-2015). For
the
decreased by two per cent (Goldwater Institute, 2010).
purposes of this paper, ‘academic administrators’ include
This trend transforms how universities operate in a way
occupants of positions with titles such as president,
that has a negative impact on the teaching mission of
vice-chancellor, provost, deputy vice-chancellor and
higher education.
pro-vice-chancellor, dean and perhaps a few other titles. Indeed, between 1993 and 2007, the number of full-time
Detriment to tenure track academic staff
academic administrators per 100 students at American research universities grew by 39 per cent, whereas the
Although universities were, historically, self-governing
number of employees engaged in teaching, research
bodies where tenured academics played a principal role
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
The parlous state of academia Viviane Callier et al.
13
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
in the university governance, academics’ governance has
similarly precarious contracts). Despite the fact that such
been eroded (Ginsberg, 2011; Rojstaczer, 1999; Executive
personnel are frequently overworked, underpaid, and
Committee of the UM Chapter of AAUP, 2014). University
do not have access to institutional resources (including
governance has become a specialised niche of academic
office space) (Allen, 2013; Hall, 2014; Schuman, 2014b),
administrators. To counter this trend, protests have
a recent study found that students’ learning is actually
occurred recently on several campuses, most prominently
enhanced when the course instructor is an adjunct versus
at the University of Illinois at Chicago (Inside Higher Ed.,
a tenure track teaching staff member (Figlio, Schapiro, &
2014), to fight for better pay and reclaim authority on
Soter, 2013). Why not, then, grant exemplary contingent
issues such as curriculum development.
academics the benefit of being able to obtain tenure too?
The excessive power of high-level administration
As argued previously, universities could create specific
was apparent when, recently on several campuses,
career tracks for research and teaching (Grant, 2014), and
deans and tenured academics were fired for speaking
recognise the contributions of good teachers as much as
out and criticising budget cuts that would jeopardise
those of innovative researchers.The current system short-
academic
programmes. A
recent example is that of Robert Buckingham, tenured professor director
and of
the
executive School
of Public Health at the University of Saskatchewan
changes both the contingent
Higher education is now run as a business, and while many of the universities are notfor-profit, they are increasingly run in such a way to maximise profits to benefit the leadership.
labour force and the students they teach. Additionally, and strikingly, student debt and the use of low-wage
adjunct
labour
have both increased faster
in Canada, sacked because
at
he ‘demonstrated egregious
schools than the national
the
high-executive-pay
conduct and insubordination’ (Huffington Post, 2014).
average (Erwin & Wood, 2014; Lewin, 2014; Wilkins,
Another example is that of the Director of Undergraduate
2014). Furthermore, student debt increased the most
Research at Virginia Tech, Tomalei Vess, who was fired for
at the universities where executive compensation also
pushing to increase resources for undergraduate research
increased the most: ‘average student debt of graduates
(Corder, 2013). In both of these cases, dismissal occurred
in the top 25 public universities with the highest
in spite of – or because – they fought for programmes and
executive pay increased five percentage points more
policies to benefit students. When university leadership
or 13 per cent faster than the national average from
cuts programmes in response to budget constraints, entire
summer 2006 to summer 2012’ (Erwin & Wood, 2014).
academic departments may disappear, but administrators
Clearly, a university education is becoming less and less
do not go away (Schuman, 2013).
accessible – especially to less-privileged students – while academic institutions benefit from tuition fee rates that
Detriment to adjunct/contingent/casual staff and students
have increased much faster than inflation. If providing quality, affordable education is the mission of colleges and universities, why is it that the leadership is compensated
Although central to a university’s mission, teaching
the most at institutions rife with student debt and the use
does not contribute to research universities’ prestige, so
of contingent instructors? Administrators are obviously
academic administrators have little incentive to invest a
benefiting to the detriment of students. To point out the
large share of resources to fulfil this mission. The thought
absurdity of this situation, Canadian professors recently
is that tenure track academics can ‘best’ be used to
organised themselves to apply for the open position of
their maximum potential by focusing on their research.
vice-chancellor at the University of Alberta – in groups of
Although programmes such as the Howard Hughes
four (Schuman, 2014a).
Medical Institute’s Bold Experiments seeks to redress this imbalance, many research universities increasingly rely on adjunct or contingent staff (in US parlance, non-tenure
Universities are shifting to one mission: research
track teaching academics, often hired on a semester-bysemester basis) to do the brunt of the teaching,especially of
Research is the main priority pushed by academic
large undergraduate courses. (The Australasian equivalent
administrators. Universities push their academics to
of these staff would be ‘casual’ teachers or those on
excel at research and win grants because of the prestige
14
The parlous state of academia Viviane Callier et al.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
and revenue they bring into the university to pay for
administrators accountable to all students and staff
the research mission. However, most researchers and
whom they are supposed to serve. Flaws in institutional
administrators overlook the true cost of research. It
structures currently allow academic administrators
often comes as a surprise that research actually costs
to transform universities into businesses for their
universities more money than it brings in; analysis reveals
own benefit while exploiting the workers (especially
that for every grant dollar brought in by researchers,
graduate students, postdoctoral fellows and precariously-
universities lose between 15 to 40 cents (Dorsey, Van
employed teachers) who create value and neglecting the
Wuyckhuyse, & Guzick, 2009). In other words, grant
major teaching mission of higher education. Although a
revenue is not sufficient to cover the total costs of the
university must remain financially solvent, its purpose
research mission. Certainly grants help cover the cost of
never was – and should not be – to maximise profits for
research, and indeed, organisations simply couldn’t be in
the benefit of the leadership.
the research game without grant funding, but the point is
Policy intervention is necessary to redress the power
that playing the research game does not bring in money
balance, make administrators accountable to all students
– on the contrary.
and staff, and ultimately allocate resources (money and
Why the drive to do research, then? World-class research brings the university prestige, attracting top academics and gifted students, as well as more grant
information) in alignment with the interests of students and academic staff. To begin discussion on this topic, we suggest the
money. Increasing research funding also allows academic
following policy interventions:
administrators to build ‘empires’ on campuses and climb
1. De-centralise administrative power: tenure-track
the administration ladder for their own personal gain.
and adjunct / contingent / casual academics should
Department chairs grow their department then leave
have a voice in university governance. Decision-
to become deans. Deans implement and operationalise
making should not be the specialised niche of
strategy and policy for their gain to become provosts.
academic administrators, but rather, a distributed
Provosts oversee goals, missions, and visions to become
and democratic process. Academics should be
presidents. Presidents lead to build legacies and/or to be
expected to participate in university governance,
promoted to even larger roles. The research enterprise
and given the time and resources to do so.This might
becomes not an end in itself, but merely the context in
require reducing the teaching and research loads
which these political games are played.
of faculty members while they serve on universitywide committees. Students should also be given the
Recommendations and conclusion
opportunity to play a more active role in university governance.
Higher education is now run as a business, and while many
2. Establish accountability mechanisms: there should
of the universities are not-for-profit, they are increasingly
be a more transparent feedback mechanism for
run in such a way to maximise profits to benefit the
student and staff satisfaction to be incorporated into
leadership. If education is run as a business, then it
academic administrators’ performance evaluations.
should function as one: academic administration should
3. Universities should adopt financial models that
examine budget items, evaluate costs and personnel,
logically and fairly support each mission of higher
adjust logistics, and ensure that the university’s operations
education: a transparent mechanism should be
are aligned with its missions of teaching and research. In
created to support research, teaching, and service
business, the profits are shared among the stakeholders.
in a way that allows each area to flourish for the
Because even private universities are heavily supported
benefit of all stakeholders. Such a model should
by public (federal) money, the stakeholders at colleges and
support both financial and intellectual value
universities are not only the academic administrators and
creation. For the teaching mission, one way to do
all other staff, but also the students and even the public at
this would be to create tenure lines for those staff
large. So, resources should be distributed accordingly and
focused on excellence in teaching and to fund these
no constituent should benefit to the detriment of another. Administrative priorities are sometimes egregiously
appropriately. 4. Establish
pay
ratios
(Erwin
& Wood, 2014):
misaligned with the best interests of students and
administrative salaries could not exceed, for example,
staff. Recent protests by students and staff point to the
ten times that of the lowest paid full-time academic
fact that policy reform is necessary to make academic
staff member. This would not cap administrative
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
The parlous state of academia Viviane Callier et al.
15
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
salaries, but it would prevent inequities from growing to unacceptable levels. 5. Establish spending ratios (Erwin & Wood, 2014): ratio of spending on non-academic administration to scholarships could be set at, for example, 2 to 1. This would help make higher education more affordable and discourage rapid tuition fee increases. Spending on specialised research instruments (which would be used by a few select students) should also be balanced with spending on classroom technology and online course development (which is likely to benefit a larger population of students). 6. Balance the decision-making bodies: boards of trustees should be composed of individuals from diverse a
socioeconomic
socioeconomic
backgrounds.
diversity
in
Ensuring
decision-making
bodies would reduce the chance that decisions be made to benefit a small but powerful group to the detriment of the university community; inclusive representation would promote equity within the university community and ensure that decisions are made to benefit the community as a whole. We believe that these issues should be openly discussed among the higher education community. As such, we hope that this article will aid in stimulating a healthy debate and discussion of these topics among all of academia’s stakeholders. Viviane Callier is a research scholar in developmental physiology at the Ronin Institute for Independent Scholarship in Montclair, New Jersey and a science writer at a consulting
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
References Allen, C. (2013). The Highly Educated, Badly Paid, Often Abused Adjunct Professors. LA Times. Retrieved from http://www.latimes.com/opinion/op-ed/ la-oe-allen-adjunct-professors-20131222-story.html. Corder, E. (2013). Dr. Tomalei Vess Unexpectedly Loses Position. Collegiate Times. Retrieved from http://issuu.com/collegiatetimes/docs/2013-12-05/1. Dorsey, E. R., Van Wuyckhuyse, B. C., & Guzick, D. S. (2009). Economics of New Faculty Hires in Basic Science. Acad Med, 84(1), 26-31. Erwin, A., & Wood, M. (2014). The One Per cent at State U. Institute for Policy Studies Blog. Retrieved from http://www.ips-dc.org/one_percent_universities. Executive Committee of the UM Chapter of AAUP. (2014). Why the Faculty Needs the AAUP. Retrieved from http://www.umich.edu/~aaupum/facneeds.html. Figlio, D. N., Schapiro, M. O., & Soter, K. B. (2013). Are Tenure-Track Professors Better Teachers? The National Bureau of Economic Research Working Paper No. 19406. Retrieved from http://www.nber.org/papers/w19406?utm_ campaign=ntw&utm_medium=email&utm_source=ntw. Ginsberg, B. (2011). The Fall of the Faculty: Oxford University Press. Goldwater Institute (2010). Administrative Bloat at American Universities: The Real Reason for High Costs in Higher Education. Goldwater Institute Policy Report, 2010. Grant, A. (2014). A Solution for Bad Teaching. The New York Times. Retrieved from http://www.nytimes.com/2014/02/06/opinion/a-solution-for-bad-teaching. html?_r=0. Hall, B. (2014). AAUP Seeks Better Deal for OSU Adjuncts. The Corvallis Gazette Times. Retrieved from http://www.gazettetimes.com/news/local/aaup-seeksbetter-deal-for-osu-adjuncts/article_e00f4c0a-c050-11e3-b54f-001a4bcf887a. html. Lewin, T. (2014). Student Debt Grows Fastest at Universities with Highest-Paid Leaders, Study Finds. The New York Times. Retrieved from http://www.nytimes. com/2014/05/19/education/study-links-growth-in-student-debt-to-pay-foruniversity-presidents.html?_r=0. Occupational Outlook Handbook, Postsecondary Administrators. (2014-2015). 2014, Retrieved from http://www.bls.gov/ooh/management/postsecondaryeducation-administrators.htm.
company in Washington, D.C.
Huffington Post. (2014). Robert Buckingham, University of Saskatchewan Dean, Fired. (2014). Huffington Post. Retrieved from http://www.huffingtonpost. ca/2014/05/14/robert-buckingham-fired_n_5325424.html.
Richard H. Singiser is an associate professor in the
Rojstaczer, S. (1999). Gone for Good: Tales of University Life After the Golden Age: Oxford University Press.
Department of Natural Sciences at Clayton State University in Morrow, Georgia. Nathan L. Vanderford is assistant dean for academic development, College of Medicine; assistant director for research, Markey Cancer Center; and assistant professor, Department of Toxicology and Cancer Biology, all at the University of Kentucky in Lexington.
Schuman, R. (2013). A Ghost Town with a Quad: Is That the Future of the American University? Slate. Retrieved from http://www.slate.com/articles/life/ education/2013/11/minnesota_state_moorhead_could_cut_18_academic_ programs_why_do_colleges.html. Schuman, R. (2014a). The Clever Stunt Four Professors Just Pulled to Expose the Outrageous Pay Gap in Academia. Slate. Retrieved from http://www.slate.com/ blogs/browbeat/2014/06/16/university_of_alberta_professors_apply_for_vice_ chancellor_s_job_in_clever.html. Schuman, R. (2014b). How to Fix Academic Labor (Pt. 372): Make Better Use of the Scarlet “A”. Chronicle Vitae. Retrieved from https://chroniclevitae.com/ news/530-how-to-fix-academic-labor-pt-372-make-better-use-of-the-scarlet-a. Inside Higher Ed., University of Illinois at Chicago Faculty Strike for First Contract. (2014). Inside Higher Ed. Retrieved from http://www.insidehighered. com/quicktakes/2014/02/19/u-illinois-chicago-faculty-strike-firstcontract#sthash.g2GqzDQM.dpbs. Wilkins, J. S. (2014). Rich Dean, Poor Student. The Ronin Institute Blog. Retrieved from http://ronininstitute.org/rich-dean-poor-student/830/.
16
The parlous state of academia Viviane Callier et al.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Could they be a threat to universities? Chad Perry Some sociopathic personality traits in managers can derail business organisations even though the leaders have been carefully selected and considered ‘high flyers’. Three of those traits are narcissism, psychopathy and Machiavellianism. These traits are ‘socially-aversive’ because the sociopaths have an ingrained disregard for relationships. We will ‘very likely’ come into hurtful contact with a sociopath. This study addresses the problem: Could a leader of a university unit with strong levels of the dark triad traits derail their unit? After considering the literature about the dark triad and university leadership, this study argues that a sociopathic leader could degrade the collaborative nature of much of academics’ work with other staff, students and society enough to produce mediocrity in their part of a university, but not enough to derail it. Implications for universities selecting non-sociopathic leaders and for individuals being led by sociopaths are suggested. Keywords: sociopaths, sociopathic leaders, dark traits, university leadership
Introduction
into professions where power can be exercised, and people without sociopathy appear more often in those
Some sociopathic personality traits in managers can
professions linked to feelings and a human connection.
derail business organisations even though the leaders
Sociopathic managers who derail an organisation do not
have been carefully selected and may be considered
deliver the required outcomes; for example, they make
‘high flyers’ (Furnham, 2010). Three of those traits are
poor decisions, use poor management practices and put
the ‘socially-aversive’ ones of psychopathy, narcissism and
the wrong people into positions (Furnham, 2010, p. viii).
Machiavellianism.
Along the way, they leave a trail of used people and, in
The traits are called ‘dark’ because of their negative
romance, a ‘trail of broken hearts’ (Hare, 1999, p. 113).
associations – research has shown one or more of these
Australians have seen sociopathic behaviour by a recent
traits are invariably linked with counter-productive
prime minister. Arguably, ex-Prime Minister Kevin Rudd
behaviour, and that sociopathic personalities who manifest
illustrates a sociopath’s three traits of dominance and self-
them typically derail (Furnham, Richards, & Paulhus, 2013,
promotion, impetuosity, and playing office politics; and also
p. 206; italics added). Some professions are more likely
illustrates how they go with a lack of empathy. According
than others to attract these dark triad leaders (Dutton,
to what has been reported, he insisted on making most
2012).These professions include business chief executive
decisions himself or with a small ‘court’ of three or four
officers (CEOs) (in Australia, CEOs in finance and mining
ministers. As Marr (2010a, p. 1) noted, ‘Leadership, Rudd
in particular (Manne 2013, p. 192)), lawyers and media;
told me, is always a lonely race.’ He would often phone
those professions least likely to attract dark trait people
journalists very early in the morning about how he was
include care aide, nursing and various ‘health’ therapies.
being presented (Marr, 2010b). He made the very quick
That is, sociopathic personalities typically find their way
decision about the hugely expensive National Broadband
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Chad Perry
17
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Network (NBN) in a way that an auditor found was ‘rushed,
and will produce outcomes that are merely mediocre
chaotic and inadequate’ (Hepworth & Bingemann, 2014, p.
– somewhere between a required transformation and a
1). Politics did not just involve electors on the electoral
derailment.
roll but also involved office politics – ‘Tracking down
Addressing this problem of leadership in Australian
the powerful, picking the people he has to know, began
universities is important. University units are not like
as a diplomatic duty and became a lifelong passion.’ He
the business organisations that are transaction-focused
appeared to even leak damaging details to the press about
and attract dark triad managers. In contrast to businesses,
Julia Gillard after she had become leader of his party that
universities are usually heavily-regulated, government-
he had derailed. He was so lacking in empathy that he
subsidised organisations. Yet there has been little
appeared to be surprised when his party voted to remove
examination of the effect of the dark traits in universities.
him as leader.
There is only one mention of dark triad trait academics
The present study addresses the question of whether
and academe in Furnham (2010, p. 103) and only two in
a leader of a university unit with strong levels of the
Hare (1999) where they are said to be similar to other
dark triad traits could derail their unit. It is argued that
white-collar psychopaths within the ranks of doctors,
a university unit has particular characteristics that lessen
police officers and writers (Hare, 1999); but no examples
the chance of a sociopathic leader derailing it, but raise
of academic sociopaths are provided and their leadership
the chance of a sociopathic leader creating mediocrity.
of other academics is not discussed there. Nevertheless,
A note about definitions of three terms is required.
there has been a ‘managerialist’ trend in university
First, consider the term ‘sociopathy’. Because the three
governance in Australia, with leaders who are perceived
traits include the one trait of psychopathy, the term
to be somewhat similar to business managers – some
‘psychopathy’ could not be used to comprehensively refer
even have ‘executive’ in their title – with ‘the emergence
to the three traits together.That is, the term ‘sociopathy’ is
of an academic managerial class that exercises power’
used here to refer to cover the three traits, instead of the
(Aspromourgos, 2012, p. 44).
term ‘psychopathy’ that refers to just one the three traits.
Concomitantly, the number of Australian universities
There is a literature about the changing and confusing use
in the Times HE 200 index has declined from 17 in 2005
of these terms but this straightforward distinction can do
to eight in 2014 (Burdon, 2014; The World University
for this non-specialist article (Diagnostic and Statistical
Rankings, 2014). There are proposals to deregulate the
Manual of Mental Disorders DSM-5, 2013; Furnham, 2010;
university sector even further. International students
Skeem, Polaschek, Patrick, & Lilienfeld, 2011).
reputedly bring into Australia revenues exceeding
Next,in this study,the term‘leader’refers to any academic
$15 billion, so higher education is the country’s third
who is given responsibility for major outcomes in a part
largest gross export earner after iron ore and coal, and
of a university like a department head or a programme
before gas, gold, tourism, oil or wheat (Department of
head. Finally, the term ‘derail’ refers to a unit going ‘off its
Foreign Affairs and Trade, 2014). Its domestic students
rails’ because it does not produce required outcomes. For
represent the future of the country in a skills world.
example, the unit has declining enrolments of students
To our knowledge, the dark traits are not considered in
or declining rankings and declining Course Experience
the selection processes for senior roles at any Australian
Questionnaire results. Depending on what these ‘required
university; although they should be in businesses
outcomes’ are, a leader’s sociopathic tendencies may
(Furnham, 2010). So should they be considered in
not always derail their unit because the tendencies are
universities? In brief, to the extent that are moving in a
dampened or harmless.There is a personality-environment
‘business-like’ direction, looking at dark traits might also
interaction. For example, in stable times a leader with
be important for university management.
sociopathic tendencies may not cause much disturbance
There are three delimitations of this study. The first is
but damaging behaviours and effects may emerge during
that the discussion is restricted to the Australian context
a period of restructuring, redundancies, high competition,
that is, to that country’s universities’ regulations and size.
new opportunities (especially for advancement or fame)
As well, it is about ‘subclinical’ people in the university
or rapid change. For example, a narcissist may be spurred
community rather than extreme ‘clinical’ people who are
into hostile action by a colleague’s success combined
often under clinical supervision (Furnham et al., 2013). In
with opportunities for covert sabotage. This study argues
other words, the university leaders are ‘subcriminal’ who do
that in many university circumstances, a sociopathic
not usually break the law like clinical sociopaths often do,
leader will not produce transformational outcomes
but they do break ordinary standards of behaviour while
18
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Chad Perry
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
violating ‘conventional ethical standards’ (Hare, 1999, p.
impetuosity. So psychopaths give the impression of being
114). Thus the finding that extreme or clinically diagnosed
decisive, ruthless, unemotional and without room for self-
psychopathy has been found in only about four per cent
doubt or empathy-triggered procrastination. ‘Just do it!’ is
of corporate professionals does not mean that this study is
one of their catch cries (Dutton & McNab, 2014, p. 99). For
about only a small number of people (Babiak, Neumann, &
its behavioural significance, psychopathy can be seen as
Hare, 2010). Indeed, we will ‘very likely’ come into hurtful
the most dangerous of the three traits.
contact with a sociopath (Hare, 1999, p. xii). These sub-
Finally, Machiavellism focuses on how others are
clinical sociopaths can exhibit different intensities of each
treated by the sociopath in pursuit of their dreams of
of their three dark traits, and so the positions reached in
dominance over others. In workplace organisations, it is
this study have to be probabilistic. The final delimitation
‘office politics’ or using gossip and other informal means
is that the leaders discussed are the middle-level leaders
to advance personal rather than organisational ends or
responsible for academic leadership of university units
those of someone else. In short, people with this trait
like departments that are directly responsible for some
are ‘characterised by constant, low-level, deviousness’
student outcomes. These department-level managers
and are ‘cynical, unprincipled, believe in interpersonal
make up to 80 per cent of the administrative decisions in
manipulation as the key for life success’ (Furnham, 2010,
a university (Brown & Moshavi, 2002). So administration
p. 18, 200).They can use behaviour like smiling and using
staff
and
vice-chancellors,
deputy vice-chancellors and pro-vice-chancellors are not included. Going beyond these delimitations can and should be done in later research.
a person’s first name to send
Addressing this problem of leadership in Australian universities is important. University units are not like the business organisations that are transaction-focussed and attract dark triad managers.
Literature review
their own message on the other person’s ‘frequency’ (Dutton & McNab, 2014), but do not receive the other person’s message. Because of some common features of the three traits, some
researchers
think
For the present work, the definitions and descriptions
they cannot really be dealt with separately (Furnham
of the traits that make up the dark triad are drawn from
et al., 2013). Indeed, some factor analytic studies have
modern research such as Furnham (2013).The first of the
shown the two traits of psychopathy and narcissism do
triad, narcissism, could be viewed in this organisational
indeed overlap, as have other studies of self- and observer-
context as the core trait that drives the others. Narcissistic
reports, for instance. But other statistical studies have
personalities are likely to perceive inequality in power
shown differences as well as significant and positive inter-
between themselves and others. For example, when asked
correlations between measures of the traits, especially
to draw shapes of themselves and others, they will draw
between the traits of psychopathy and Machiavellianism,
themselves as a bigger shape than the shapes of others
with the lowest inter-correlations between narcissism
(Manne, 2013). They say ‘I’ more often than they say ‘we’.
and Machiavellianism. So the modern position is that the
So they are characterised by self-confidence, and the social
traits are different and are worth considering separately
aversion that is associated with ‘entitlement, dominance
– ‘The lion’s share of research in this review suggests
and superiority’ (Furnham et al., 2013, p. 200). In its
that any apparent equivalence of the dark triad members
extreme form, this narcissism can be called grandiosity
is illusory’ (Furnham et al., 2013). For this research that
without any empathy or remorse. They seek prestige and
has not measured personality traits in university subjects
call attention to themselves by self-promotion. So they
using psychological tests, it is important that observers
dress well and often give favourable first impressions.
can distinguish between the three traits in people.
In turn, psychopathy (Furnham et al., 2013) is
Consequently, the traits are treated separately in this article.
characterised by high impulsivity that could even
Two personality tests are the most common measures
be viewed as thrill-seeking and low empathy. In the
of the triad.The Dirty Dozen has 12 questions (Jonason &
organisational context of this research, psychopathy
Webster, 2010), and the Short Dark Triad has 27 questions
could be seen in quick decision-making and actions with
(Jones & Paulhus, 2014); neither is clearly superior to the
little regard for consultations with others and even with
other although the longer test has slightly better predictive
little concern for others’ reactions to the decision or
power (Furnham et al., 2013). For this research academics
action. In its extreme form, this psychopathy can be called
could not actually be asked to fill in either personality test
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Chad Perry
19
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
after they were told about the topic, and so the shorter
rule that freedom. ‘Professors, especially tenured ones at
Dirty Dozen has been used as the basis for understanding
places like Harvard, answer to nobody’ (Wood, 2014, p.
each trait in a workplace context. Observer-reports were
57). So this concept of academic freedom may limit the
used in assessing the cases below, and such reports have
‘executive’ power of sociopathic leaders. Paradoxically,
been used before in dark triad research.
it may also foster the development of sociopathy among
The Dirty Dozen’s 12 items could perhaps be used
academics who are non-leaders and who may become
by a reader to get an initial estimate of how intensely
leaders in the medium to long term. Their freedom could
sociopathic they or their leaders are.The items describing
mean there are few constraints on the rise of narcissism
people with the dark triad are (from Jonason & Webster,
among them, and so the emergence of sociopaths among
2010):
academic leaders may actually be more pronounced than
• Narcissistic leaders tend to: want others to admire them;
in business settings. Only the relationships/team spirit
want others to pay attention to them; seek prestige or
developed by a non-sociopathic leader may slow this
status; and expect special favours from others
development of sociopathic academics in the medium to
• Psychopathic leaders tend to: lack remorse; be unconcerned with the morality of their actions; be callous or insensitive; and be cynical
long term. This difference between a university and a business can be explained by external and internal forces operating
• Machiavellian leaders tend to: manipulate others to get
on a university that do not operate on a business. The
their way; use deceit or lies to get their way; use flattery
external forces on universities include the increasing
to get their way; exploit others towards their own end.
competition for students and prestige as seen in the
In brief, the dark triad are three distinct but related
widely-read rankings in Australia’s Good Universities
personality traits that help explain some socially-aversive
Guide. Another external force is the regulation of
behaviour in many organisations. How they could affect
universities by governments that are the main source of
the leadership of parts of universities is examined next.
funds for the universities in Australia. Another external force is private universities and training centres, as well
Higher education and other organisations’ leadership Higher education
as MOOCs – ‘massive open online courses’ – and other internet-related influences. In turn, internal forces are university staff, especially tenured or near-tenured staff, who are inward- and discipline-looking. They are
‘Managerialism’ has become more evident in Australian
concerned with protecting what entitlements they have
universities (Aspromourgos, 2012). The new types of
against leaders and, through what remains of collegial
leaders have the financial power to dominate others
governance, they influence hiring and promotions and so
in their part of the university; for example, the term
‘end up cloning themselves’ (Lohman, 2002, p. 5). Facing
‘Executive Dean’ is becoming more common. The similar,
these forces, some leaders can think the deliberation and
power-changed situation in the United Kingdom has been
consensus of the old collegial governance systems can
summarised in these words: ‘So management ideologies
produce gridlock instead of transformation.
do seem to serve the interests of manager‐academics and
These old collegial governance systems were developed
help cement relations of power and dominance, even in
in the West to allow deep discipline specialisation (into
contexts like universities which were not traditionally
‘silos’) and to protect academics’ independence from
associated with the dominance of management’ (Deem
outside distortions of their research and teaching (Lohman,
& Brehony, 2005, p. 217). But this power and dominance
2002). But small departments/‘tribes’ could compete with
must serve the requirements of leadership. There are
each other for resources, and could ‘Balkanise’ a university.
many different leadership practices, and it will be argued
An alternative is a large multidisciplinary department or
here that the core of all of them is relationships between
to make the smaller departments into semi-autonomous
the leaders and followers.
bodies within the loose federation of a faculty. Another
This leadership in a university is different from leadership in other types of organisations, and it has
alternative is to have distributed leadership (Harking & Healy, 2013).
been likened to ‘herding cats’ (Brown & Moshavi, 2002).
Solving these problems of governance could require
The concept of academic freedom within a class room
non-sociopathic leaders at different strata within a
or laboratory limits much ‘executive’ power. One Harvard
university. These strata all require collaboration within
ex-dean thought that it was laughable that he could over-
teams operating concurrently within and between strata,
20
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Chad Perry
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
and a sociopathic leader is unlikely to develop this
in 70 US academic departments found that relationship-
collaboration because of their disregard for the empathy
oriented leaders were considered to be the most
that is the core of long-term collaboration. For example,
effective – ‘The unique characteristics of the employment
there could be different leaders for the level of a faculty/
arrangements and psychological contract between faculty
school that could itself be a mix of different disciplines in
and their institutions may make charismatic, relationship-
the discipline strata (like marketing and finance). These
oriented leadership a key determinant of department
disciplines could contribute to programmes for different
chair effectiveness’ (Brown & Moshavi, 2002, p. 79).
student segments (like an MBA and a bachelor of finance
Relationships are the core of collaboration within groups
degree, for example). The contributors to a programme
that improves their teaching.Even one hour of collaborative
from each discipline need to collaborate in order to
discussion per week between all the sessional staff and
develop effective assessment and mix of content (the
the unit coordinator helped improve their effectiveness
ideal size for a team is only about five or six (Thompson,
staff at one Australian university – ‘they matter for the
2003)). If academics at each level do not share insights
motivation of individual sessional staff members and
and processes for fear that others will competitively ‘steal
the overall quality and cohesiveness of course delivery’
my ideas’, the programme will falter. So if a sociopathic
(Byers & Tani, 2014, p. 13). Such collaboration among
leader at any level cannot understand how collaboration
staff can improve teaching at schools (Mosle, 2014) and
is developed, the outcomes at that level and others will
it could improve teaching at universities because such
be mediocre.
social learning through role-modelling and the evolution
There has been some research about the effectiveness
of expectations are hallmarks of the development of
of middle-level university leaders investigated here. One
professionals (Hilton & Slotnick, 2005; Swanwick, 2010).
review found 12 traits were necessary for transformational
The modern requirement for collaboration in Australian
leadership, with 9 of them clearly associated with how the
universities makes a model of ‘distributed leadership’
leader relates to the group and marked with an asterisk in
in discipline management necessary (Harking & Healy,
this list of traits (Bryman, 2007, p. 697):
2013). Finally, even the collaboration among the few
1. Clear sense of direction/strategic vision.
authors of co-authored research articles is useful because
2. *Preparing department arrangements to facilitate the
it results in publications that are more frequently cited
direction set.
(Harzing, 2008).
3. *Being considerate.
This need for collaboration is not limited to the staff
4. * Treating academic staff fairly and with integrity.
in a unit (as noted in Burdon, 2014), for it extends to
5. *Being trustworthy and having personal integrity.
students and to people in society. A history of the digital
6. *Allowing the opportunity to participate in key
revolution covered success and failures, and failures did
decisions/ encouraging open communication. 7. *Communicating well about the direction the department is going.
not succeed because they could not form teams – they could not collaborate (Isaacson, 2014). Relatedly, Australia ranks 11th on innovation inputs but is only the 32nd (out
8. *Acting as a role model/having credibility.
of 33 OECD counties) for innovation outputs. According
9. *Creating a positive/collegial work atmosphere in the
to the Chief Scientist, Australia is also placed 32nd for
department.
collaboration between higher education and business. So
10. Advancing the department’s cause with respect to
Australian academics are rewarded for producing citable
constituencies internal and external to the university
publications where Australia ranks 11th; for impact
and being proactive in doing so.
on society, the rank is a low 66th. Note that co-author
11. Providing feedback on performance.
collaboration on citable publications is often a ‘digital’
12. *Providing resources for and adjusting workloads to
rather a face-to-face relationship with co-authors at
stimulate scholarship and research. 13. Making
academic
appointments
different institutions rather than the longer-term, nonthat
enhance
department’s reputation. Another survey of the literature concluded that, in universities, a people-oriented leadership style is more
sociopathic, relationship-rich collaboration involving frequent reciprocity with other organisations in society and with students. Leaders in universities who value and practise such collaboration are needed.
likely to lead to staff satisfaction, group cohesiveness, and
Given the above considerations, it is possible to imagine
improved performance results (Osseo-Asare, Longbottom,
what a unit lead by a sociopath looks like. First, how
& Murphy, 2005). A survey of 440 university academics
could narcissism be apparent in a university workplace?
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Chad Perry
21
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Narcissistic leaders and their cultures of dominance
& Minkov, 2010) of a dark triad university setting, with
would emphasise the importance of their individual
members wanting individual advancement within the
achievements, and how significant they believe these
organisation and having to use manipulation, deceit and
accomplishments will appear to others. It is about looking
flattery for that purpose, exploiting others in the process.
good, as against doing good, and much less about being good. They like to self-promote as a corollary to their
Non-university settings
perceived dominance. For instance, their names would
Modern research about leadership in non-university
often appear often in university communications and
settings confirms the importance of groups relative
other media, even in situations when their influence was
to leadership by one person. For example, The New
small. Their names could appear on letterheads or notice
Psychology of Leadership: Identity, Influence and Power
boards, etc. That their position is clearly above others in
cites over 400 studies of leadership from 1840 to 2010, and
the unit could be shown in an honour board of previous
concludes that leadership is about followers, too (Haslam,
holders of the position. Their titles would appear to be
Reicher & Platow, 2010) – it is the followers who ‘confer’
important to reflect their prestige. Narcissistic people
leadership on the leader who ‘is one of us’ and not ‘one of
expect special favours, and so they expect perks like
them’ (Bartel, 2011, p. 478) or a sociopathic ‘one of them
bigger salaries, types of car, and offices.
self’. Leadership is about engaging followers to work with
Next, how could psychopathy be apparent in a university
workplace?
Psychopaths
like
to
the leader to advance towards the organisation’s goals and
make
aspirations. It is about the context of the group, and about
decisions impulsively, with limited consultation with
the contingency of matching leader(s) and the group
others and without regard for the longer-term effect
of which they are a part. There are many examples that
of those decisions on unit members. Meetings of unit
demonstrate that the individual leader is not crucial. For
members would be few, with the leader clearly running
example, to build good-to-great companies did not require
the meeting towards an end that they and their small
‘a genius with a thousand helpers’ but an executive team
‘court’ had decided on beforehand. Indeed, sociopathic
who set the direction (Collins 2001, p. 52). Similarly, studies
leaders who derail or nearly derail an organisation need
of randomly selected leaders versus leaders selected in
their supportive court to do so. Some staff in the court
the usual systematic way show randomly selected leader
are ‘conformers’ or ‘colluders’ who are ‘selfish, ambitious
teams are superior! The reason for the former’s superiority
… and openly supportive of toxic tyrants’ (Furnham,
supports an emphasis on the team because systematically
2010, p. 24).The existence of this court may be somewhat
selected leaders ‘often undermine group goals because
similar to the Stockholm Syndrome, where alliance with
they assert their personal superiority at the expense of
one’s captor may make survival more probable. In the
developing a sense of shared team identity’ (Thompson,
sociopathic workplace, social events for staff would be
2003, p. 235; italics added).
scarce because relationships are not important to the
These considerations suggest that dark triad leaders
leader. For that reason, too, staff would not be in their
may not be effective because they lack the empathy
offices outside of student contact times, and would try
required to allow members of groups to work together
to avoid conflict by minimising contact with the leader
and with the leader.
and their court (Furnham, 2010). Incidentally, staff could
In brief, the ingrained disregard of relationships of
also avoid studying the trail of sociopaths. Studying them
sociopathic leaders should be a cause for concern in
may dehumanise a staff member because subclinical
any organisation. Parts of a university have particular
sociopaths may not exhibit every trait of an extreme
characteristics such as academic freedom that lessen the
sociopath:
chance of a sociopathic leader derailing it, but raise the
There’s a terribly seductive power in becoming a psychopath stalker. It can really dehumanise you … It kind of turns you into a bit of a psychopath yourself in that that you start to shove people into that box. It robs you of empathy and your connection to human beings (Bercovici, 2011, p. 1).
chance that a sociopathic leader will create, or continue to drive, a mediocre part of a university.
Implications There are implications of this position that sociopathic
Finally, how could Machiavellianism be apparent in a
leaders do not benefit a part of a university even though
university workplace? Machiavellianism would flourish
they may not derail it. First, consider what universities
under the high power distance (Hofstede, Hofstede
could look at when selecting leaders for units. Sociopaths
22
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Chad Perry
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
can quickly ‘read people’ for their own personal purposes,
children, cheat in a game of chance, lie during negotiations
and they lack the social inhibitions that are needed
and endorse unethical behaviour like stealing at work
to develop truly visionary statements with a group in
(Brown, 2013). They attribute success to their own
complex situations. Presumably it would be difficult to
individual skills and talents, and less to the other things
arrange for shortlisted applicants to complete a Dirty
that contributed to that success. Individualism breeds
Dozen test, or a similar test like the give and take test of
further inequality. Narcissists believe their superiority
Grant (2013). Perhaps one could ask them to explain what
entitles them to even more unequal rewards. But their
‘leadership’ is and checking later whether their answer
belief is wrong for ‘there are a lot of new data that show,
coincides with these four characteristics of group-centred
if you’re generous, and charitable, and altruistic, you will
leadership (Haslam et al., 2010): the leader is ‘one of us’
live longer, you will feel more fulfilled, you will feel more
shares the qualities of the group; who champions the
expressive of who you are as a person’ (Brown, 2013, p. 1).
group’s interests; who helps craft the understanding of
Inequality breeds narcissism that breeds inequality. Thus
what the group shares; and so makes ‘us matter’ (Bartel,
there is a benefit in having senior roles in hierarchies for
2011, p. 478). Or ask the interviewee to predict what other
a set, limited number of years, for both the university and
people would do in an interdependent work situation
for the senior person.
(they will explain what they would do) (McKinsey &
There are implications for individuals as well as
Company, 2014). References from superiors or supervisors would be unreliable because sociopaths
treat
them
differently from how they treat
others. Recall
that
sociopaths are adept at office
those for universities. How
Inequality breeds narcissism that breeds inequality. Thus there is a benefit in having senior roles in hierarchies for a set, limited number of years, for both the university and for the senior person.
politics and so they are adept at
ingratiating
individuals can deal with sociopathic managers has been
studied
(Furnham,
2010; Payson, 2002; Stout, 2006), but academic freedom would limit the destructive forces that can leashed upon
themselves
a person in a university who
with their superiors while they ‘brutalise their juniors’
does not want to be a courtier of the leader. Possibly, a
(Hare, 1999, p. 116). And ask referees by phone to explain
non-sociopathic individual should look towards a transfer
how the applicants had led groups in the past is another
to another university.And a non-sociopath who is thinking
alternative, or ask about their self-confidence (narcissism),
about becoming a leader of a unit should look at the unit’s
determination (psychopathy) and awareness of office
staff to check if they are the type of people they want
politics (Machiavellism). Note that some level of the dark
to be ‘one of’. Derailment is caused by bad followers as
traits can be useful in a leader. Few of us would want to be
well as by bad leaders. It bears noting that sociopathic
led by an indecisive, dithering, shrinking violet who does
behaviours of non-leaders can also be damaging. Finally,
not listen to any office gossip at all (Dutton & McNab,
the implications for individual academics who are
2014). Another possibility is to seek comments from an
sociopathic need not be discussed in detail here because
applicant’s subordinates at previous jobs.
sociopathy is often more an ingrained personality disorder
So there are difficulties in selecting appropriate leaders.
than a mental illness that can be easily cured. Perhaps they
Nevertheless, a university should be careful to select non-
could concentrate the relatively solitary career route of
sociopathic leaders.The entitlement beliefs of sociopathic
research? But sociopaths are usually so self-confident that
leadership practices breed on themselves. Seeing their
they do not think they need to change whatever they
position on unit displays or in the size of their car or room
do or to get help (Furnham, 2010, p. 257). So preventing
or salary makes sociopaths think that their circle should
their appointment is better than trying to cure them. In
be even bigger (Manne, 2013). For example, researchers
contrast to sociopathic leaders, other leaders can learn
at intersections and crosswalks have found that drivers
about themselves; they seek feedback and other means
in more expensive, high-status cars give way less often
of self-improvement through coaching and personal
than those in less expensive cars (Piff, 2013). For example,
development.
Mercedes drivers were three to four times more likely to
Considerations like these, of the implications of an
break the law than drivers of lower-status cars. Indeed,
understanding of sociopathy in universities, are becoming
there is experimental evidence from more than 30 studies
more important. Narcissism is becoming more common
that rich people are more likely to: take lollies meant for
in our consumer capitalist society and it may even
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Chad Perry
23
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
be becoming an ‘epidemic’ (Manne, 2013, p. 25). And sociopathy may be more common among academics than one expects (Hare, 1999). So detecting it and guarding against its effects is hard but necessary.
Conclusion In summary, this study addressed the problem: Could a leader of a university unit with strong levels of the dark triad traits derail their unit? This study argued that a sociopathic leader fosters less collaboration in the unit of a university and so the unit may be mediocre rather than excellent.The study first noted that sociopathic leaders can derail other types of organisations like businesses because these leaders place little value on most relationships. It then argued that there are managerialist forces operating in Australian universities that may enhance sociopathy, but the unusual characteristics of the parts of a university suggest that leaders with some sociopathic dark traits cannot derail them. That is, a sociopathic leader could degrade the collaborative nature of much academics’ work with other staff, students and society enough to produce mediocrity in their part of a university, but not enough to derail it. In short, sociopathic leaders can probably create mediocrity but not much else. In conclusion, Australian universities need to become more aware of the need to have ‘we- oriented’ leaders.The management thinker and writer, Peter Drucker, summed up this required position: The leaders who work most effectively, it seems to me, never say ‘I”… They don’t think ‘I’. They think ‘we’; they think team. They understand their function is to make the team function. They accept responsibility and don’t sidestep it, but ‘we’ gets the credit (quoted in Manne, 2013, p. 191).
Acknowledgement The author thanks Bruce Millettt and several others for their valuable comments on early drafts of this article, and the blind peer reviewers for their valuable comments on the penultimate draft. Chad Perry is a long-time business academic, currently affiliated with the Australian Institute of Business in Adelaide, South Australia.
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
References Aspromourgos, T. (2012). The managerialist university: an economic interpretation. Australian Universities’ Review, 54(2). Babiak, P., Neumann, C. S., & Hare, R. D. (2010). Corporate psychopathy: Talking the walk. Behavioral Sciences & the Law, 28(2), 174–193. doi:10.1002/ bsl.925 Barker, E. (2014). Which Professions Have the Most Psychopaths? The Fewest? Time. Retrieved August 30, 2014, from http://time.com/32647/whichprofessions-have-the-most-psychopaths-the-fewest/ Bartel, C. A. (2011). Alexander S. Haslam, Stephen D. Reicher, and Michael J. Platow: The New Psychology of Leadership: Identity, Influence and Power. Administrative Science Quarterly, 56(3), 477–479. doi:10.1177/0001839212437539 Bercovici, J. (2011, June 14). Why (some) psychopaths make great CEOSs. Forbes. Retrieved from http://www.forbes.com/sites/jeffbercovici/2011/06/14/ why-some-psychopaths-make-great-ceos/ Brown, F., & Moshavi, D. (2002). Herding academic cats: Faculty reactions to transformational and contingent reward leadership by department chairs. Journal of Leadership Studies, 8(3), 79–93. Brown, J. (2013, June 21). Exploring the Psychology of Wealth, “Pernicious” Effects of Economic Inequality. Retrieved from http://www.pbs.org/newshour/bb/ business-jan-june13-makingsense_06-21/ Bryman, A. (2007). Effective leadership in higher education: a literature review. Studies in Higher Education, 32(6), 693–710. doi:10.1080/03075070701685114 Burdon, S. (2014, September 30). Will Australia catch the next digital wave? [Sound]. Retrieved October 5, 2014, from http://www.abc.net.au/radionational/ programs/ockhamsrazor/will-australia-catch-the-next-digital-wave3f/5779808 Byers, P., & Tani, M. (2014). Engaging or training sessional staff. Australian Universities’ Review, 56(1), 13–20. Deem, R., & Brehony, K. J. (2005). Management as ideology: the case of “new managerialism” in higher education. Oxford Review of Education, 31(2), 217–235. doi:10.1080/03054980500117827 Department of Foreign Affairs and Trade. (2014). Australia’s top 25 exports, goods and services, 2013 (a). Retrieved from http://dfat.gov.au/publications/ tgs/index.html#exports Diagnostic and Statistical Manual of Mental Disorders DSM-5. (2013) (Vol. 5th edition). Arlington VA: American Psychiatric Association. Retrieved from http://www.psychiatry.org/practice/dsm/dsm5 Dutton, K. (2012). The Wisdom of Psychopaths: What Saints, Spies, and Serial Killers Can Teach Us About Success. New York: Scientific American / Farrar, Straus and Giroux. Dutton, K., & McNab, A. (2014). The Good Psychopath’s Guide to Success. London: Bantam. Retrieved from http://www.amazon.com/Good-PsychopathsGuide-Success-psychopath/dp/1910167436/ref=sr_1_1?s=books&ie=UTF8&qid =1412152733&sr=1-1&keywords=the+good+psychopaths+guide+to+success Furnham, A. (2010). The elephant in the boardroom: the causes of leadership derailment. Palgrave Macmillan. Furnham, A., Richards, S., & Paulhus, D. (2013). The dark triad of personality: a 10 year review. Social and Personality Psychology Compass, 10(1111/spc3), 199–216. Grant, A. (2013). Give and Take: A Revolutionary Approach to Success. London: Hachette. Hare, R. (1999). Without Conscience: The Disturbing World of the Psychopaths Among Us. London: Guildford Press.
24
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Chad Perry
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
Harking, D., & Healy, A. (2013). Redefining & leading the academic discipline in Australian universities. Australian Universities’ Review, 55(2), 80–92. Harzing, A. (2008). Publish or Perish? The value of Google Scholar for extended impact monitoring (pp. 1–11). Presented at the ERIM Workshop on Research, University of Melbourne. Retrieved from http://www.harzing.com/download/ popextimpact.pdf Haslam, S., Reicher, D., & Platow, J. (2010). The New Psychology of Leadership: Identity, Influence and Power. London: Psychology Press. Hepworth, A., & Bingemann, M. (2014, August 5). Labor’s NBN “rushed, chaotic”, says audit. The Australian. Sydney. Retrieved from http://www. theaustralian.com.au/business/in-depth/labors-nbn-rushed-chaotic-says-audit/ story-e6frgaif-1227013441446 Hilton, S., & Slotnick, H. (2005). Proto-professionalism: how professionalisation occurs across the continuum of medical education. Medical Education, 39, 58–65. Hofstede, G., Hofstede, G., & Minkov, M. (2010). Cultures and Organisations: Software of the Mind (3rd ed.). New York: McGraw Hill. Isaacson, W. (2014). The Innovators: How a Group of Hackers, Geniuses, and Geeks Created the Digital Revolution. New York: Simon & Schuster. Jonason, P., & Webster, G. (2010). The Dirty Dozen: A Concise Measure of the Dark Triad. Psychological Assessment, 22(2), 420–432. Jones, D., & Paulhus, D. (2014). Introducing the short dark triad (SD3): a brief measure of dark personalities. Assessment, 21(1), 28–41. Lohman, S. (2002). Herding Cats, Moving Cemeteries, and Hauling Academic Trunks: Why Change Comes Hard to the University. Presented at the Annual Meeting of the Association of the Study of Higher Education, Sacramento, California. Manne, A. (2013). The Life of I: The New Culture of Narcissism. Melbourne: Melbourne University Press. Marr, D. (2010b). Power Trip: The Political Journey of Kevin Rudd. Quarterly Essay 38. Melbourne: Black Inc.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Marr, D. (2010a). We need to talk about Kevin ... Rudd, that is. Sydney Morning Herald. Retrieved October 27, 2014, from http://www.smh.com.au/national/ we-need-to-talk-about-kevin--rudd-that-is-20100607-xnv5.html McKinsey & Company. (2014, June). Wharton’s Adam Grant on the key to professional success. Retrieved August 17, 2014, from http://www.mckinsey.com/ insights/organization/whartons_adam_grant_on_the_key_to_professional_ success Mosle, S. (2014). Building better teachers. The Atlantic, 314(2), 42–44. Osseo-Asare, A., Longbottom, D., & Murphy, W. (2005). Leadership best practices for sustaining quality in UK higher education from the perspective of the EFQM Excellence Model. Quality Assurance in Education, 13(2), 148–170. Payson, E. (2002). The Wizard of Oz and Other Narcissists: Coping with the One-Way Relationship in Work, Love, and Family. Royal Oak, Michigan: Julian Day. Piff, P. (2013). Does money make you mean? Retrieved from http://www.ted.com/ talks/paul_piff_does_money_make_you_mean Skeem, J., Polaschek, D., Patrick, C., & Lilienfeld, S. (2011). Psychopathic Personality: Bridging the Gap Between Scientific Evidence and Public Policy. Psychological Science in the Public Interest, 12(3), 95–162. Stout, M. (2006). The Sociopath Next Door. New York: Harmony. Swanwick, T. (2010). Understanding Medical Education: Evidence, theory, and practice. Hoboken NJ: Wiley-Blackwell. Retrieved from http://www.chegg. com/textbooks/understanding-medical-education-1st-edition-97814051968021405196807?trackid=2e145e00&autosuggest=1&uqry=understanding+medic al+edu&ii=1 The World University Rankings 2014. (2014). Times Higher Education Magazine. Retrieved from http://www.timeshighereducation.co.uk/worlduniversity-rankings/2014-15/world-ranking Thompson, L. (2003). Making the Team. Upper Saddle River, New Jersey: Pearson Education. Wood, G. (2014). The Future of College? The Atlantic, 314(2), 50–60.
The ‘dark traits’ of sociopathic leaders Chad Perry
25
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching Helen J McLaren & Paul L Kenny Flinders University
Teaching academics are under pressure to move away from traditional lecture-tutorial teaching modes to less traditional forms. Such pressures are in addition to changes to funding arrangements and other developments that increasingly oblige universities to operate as businesses. The flow-on effects for teachers are increased student:staff ratios, changes in student diversity and less face-to-face time, while also being required to meet expectations for increased research output. While it has become the norm to shift away from traditional teaching methods, individuals are not always equipped with educational theory nor the time, technology and motivations to change significantly what they do. We draw upon a workplace audit that explored the use of four non-traditional teaching and learning modes. These modes were chosen because of professional development workshops available centrally at our university and because they offered promise in terms of time-saving for teachers and educational effectiveness for students. The majority of respondants reported using one or more of these non-traditional teaching and learning modes. However, contradictory information in qualitative descriptions suggested that this majority had limited knowledge about the technicalities and the application of these modes; instead they attempted to fit descriptions of their traditional teaching into the non-traditional descriptors provided. While we seek to understand these responses, which may well be a form of resistance, we consider how diffusion of innovation theory may provide insight into why change has not been forthcoming. Keywords: university teaching, traditional teaching methods, lectures, tutorials
Introduction
added burden and, in itself, pressure to change can become a source of resistance.
When academics are asked to change their teaching
In this paper we commence by sharing our two very
from traditional lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional
different journeys toward the use of non-traditional
forms, they might ask, ‘What’s in it for us?’ But there
teaching and learning modes, which will resonate with
may not be easy answers unless these individuals can
others. We offer that a supported change process is the
observe potential benefits of something new and be
better of our two alternatives, but also contemplate
supported to test it for themselves. The problem is that
contexts in which teaching academics may feel pressured
teaching academics are under increasing pressures
to change at the same time compelled to remain steadfast
to teach more and research more. Developing new
in old ways. Diffusion of innovation theory helps us
materials to enable change of teaching mode is an
to explore barriers to mainstream majority change in
26
Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching McLaren & Kenny
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
teaching at our own work location, as well as potential
they took. While driven by anxiety, this haphazard
strategies that may support colleagues in our faculty
approach allowed me to shift greater responsibility to
to transition to less traditional teaching. As described
my students and to manage my workload. What I applied
by Rogers (2003) diffusion of innovation theory offers
was by trial and error, lengthy and at great costs to my
insight into how something new is communicated
research time and work-life balance. I did not know of
among individuals in a given social system over time.
the educational theories to inform what I was doing,
We consider that diffusion of innovation theory offers
such as ‘popular education’ (Freire, 1974), ‘assumptions
insight for targeting support strategies for knowledge
of adult learners’ (Knowles, 1972), ‘participatory learning’
acquisition and subsequent uptake of new teaching
(Kucukaydin & Cranton, 2012) and ‘flipped classrooms’
modes, as well as advocating up for resources, time and
(Bergmann & Sams, 2008). Had I had more knowledge,
space for our colleagues.
support and understanding of educational theory and methods from the onset, my journey would have been
Our journeys
much less arduous.
Shortly after commencing as a teaching academic at
a model for teaching and learning that was grounded in
Flinders University I became a member of a school
educational theory and method. His implementation
On the other hand my colleague and co-author applied
teaching
and
committee,
learning
then
later
appointed as faculty chair. With no formal schooling in educational theory, little experience as a teaching
was
I was simply managing large numbers of students in whatever way I could, for my own survival, while also trying to make learning enjoyable and relevant.
academic and no research interests
in
informed,
which
ensured a smooth change process
that
impacted
little on his research time. With the introduction of flipped teaching and teambased learning he observed
university
positive changes in student
education I questioned, ‘Why me?’ In my view, I was
attendance, participation in workshops and good
green: flying by the seat of my pants; just keeping my
feedback from student satisfaction surveys. Students were
head above water; and, staying one step ahead of my
engaging in content material specific to their discipline
students. I was not doing anything particularly innovative
while also developing professional etiquette and other
or outstanding. I was simply trying to stimulate student
skills relevant to their future employment (Kenny, 2011;
enthusiasm for learning, efficiently so to balance
Kenny, 2012). For my colleague the benefit of flipping
teaching with my research, and within the confines of
meant that student knowledge acquisition traditionally
my knowledge, resources and space available to me. Is
done in lectures took place outside of the classroom,
this not what all of us are doing?
small stake assessment upon arrival at workshops
I was perceived as innovative in my teaching design
negated ‘free-riders’ and teamwork helped strengthen
and engagement with students, which I adapted from the
depth of understanding and application of knowledge;
teaching and learning styles I enjoyed as an undergraduate.
the products of teamwork were also assessed. The
I had large student numbers and threadbare teaching
obvious benefits were increased student engagement in
space, so I created knowledge acquisition, interactive
pre-learning, peer and teacher support for students when
and assessment opportunities in virtual space which left
developing their thinking in workshops, and reduction
face-to-face time available to rotate smaller student groups
in marking time outside of face-to-face sessions. All this
through my interactive workshops. I was simply managing
made the teaching more enjoyable because teaching
large numbers of students in whatever way I could, for my
was managed and not impacting on other commitments.
own survival, while also trying to make learning enjoyable
The relatively small up-front investment of preparatory
and relevant. I used curriculum matrices for engaging
time translated into large returns in subsequent years.
students in co-creation of their own learning pathways.
While we both experienced significant benefits from the
As well, I drew from the pre-knowledge my students
use of non-traditional teaching, in contrast my up-front
brought to the classroom and this helped with sharing
investment was large.
of expertise with peers.The blend of face-to-face learning
Whether or not our approaches could be named, we
and interactive online work moved students to taking
shared teaching and learning models that offered promise
responsibility for their own learning and the directions
in terms of student engagement, educational success and
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching McLaren & Kenny
27
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
our own time efficiency; we believe more so than most
teaching. While more domestic students are accessing
traditional lecture-tutorial configurations (Bergmann
university education (Bentley et al., 2014), government
& Sams, 2008; Kenny, 2011; Kenny, 2012; Michaelsen &
cost-cutting has influenced Australian universities to seek
Sweet, 2008; Picciano, 2011; Ramsden, 2003). My teaching
full fee-paying students mostly from overseas (Forbes-
approaches were driven by my anxiety and fears about
Mewett & Nyland, 2013; Robertson, 2014). International
workload, which is not a healthy way for anyone to
students represent over a quarter of Australian university
function. On the other hand, my colleague experienced
enrolments and they contribute approximately 40 per
an informed and supported transition to non-traditional
cent of student revenue, but spending per capita in
teaching. We conferred and agreed his was the easier
the classroom is argued to have not likewise increased
journey. But we also acknowledge changing university
(Bentley et al., 2014). The reality of more students and
contexts, external and internal, that have created anxious
relatively fewer resources has no doubt affected the
environments for teaching academics. For many, this
nature of the classroom (Sawir, 2013), and evolutions
makes change difficult. While we seek to understand the
in student diversity has added even more pressures on
contexts that have created imperatives for change, our
university teachers.
ultimate endeavour is to consider how we might advocate
It is often noted that Australian university students
for greater support for our colleagues to transition to non-
are more diverse in terms of cultural makeup than in
traditional teaching in an ever evolving higher education
any previous decades. For example, there has been
environment. This is in preference to having demands
growth in middle- to older-age students (Cooper, 2007;
foisted upon them, which could result in increased levels
Roeder, 2006), more students of low socio-economic
of resistance.
status (Klinger & Murray, 2012) and refugee backgrounds (Wache & Zufferey, 2013) are accessing university, and
Changing contexts
global mobility of students to Australia has increased (Sawir, 2013). Immigration pathways via tertiary education
The Review of Australian Higher Education (Bradley et
have attracted more students whose choice of study is not
al., 2008) required implementation of quality assurance
necessarily the same as the degree into which they are
frameworks for the higher education sector and there
admitted, which presents as variable in motivation for
have been a range of responses by Australian universities.
study (Khoo, Hugo & McDonald, 2008; Robertson, 2014).
With some relevance to this paper are the introduction
All this means that university students are multifarious
of centralised professional development programmes to
in terms of educational background, learning-style
support improvements in teaching and learning (Keirle
preferences, work experience, motivation and their
& Morgan, 2011) and audits to ensure that quality
approaches to study (Cooper, 2007; Gursansky & Le Sueur,
assurance frameworks are met (Department of Education
2012; Hopkins et al., 2005). Researchers have highlighted
Employment and Workplace Relations, 2009). All this
that contemporary students are also balancing work, life
imposes additional pressures on teaching academics,
and study; many demand less on-campus time and/or real-
particularly when amidst constantly changing socio-
time commitments and they want less lecturing and more
political and economic climates informing academia.
interaction when they do attend (Campos-Sánchez et al.,
For example, student:staff ratios continually rise and
2013; Erol et al., 2012). Others have noted that students
workload allocations are always changing – not often
want more use of information technology (Johnson & Luo,
in favour of individuals. But changing dynamics of the
2012; Mirk et al., 2010; Steenkamp & Rudman, 2013) and
higher education landscape does not stop there. Pressure
flexibility in completing their degrees (Lawrence et al.,
to secure outside funding and competition has grown
2013;Taylor & Newton, 2013). Ensuring quality education
into an ‘enterprise’ culture in which teaching academics
in an environment of ‘doing more with less’ while also
are asked to meet key performance indicators in research
maintaining personal and institutional reputation has put
at the same time as managing exponential changes in
immense pressure on teaching academics to respond by
teaching.
changing their teaching approaches. It appears from our
The removal of university enrolment caps (Bradley et
audit of four non-traditional teaching and learning modes
al., 2008; Keirle & Morgan, 2011), the abolition of further
that in our faculty there is awareness of non-traditional
enrolment controls in 2012 (Norton, 2013) and steep rises
teaching modes, at least by name. Despite this, there
in domestic student enrolments across socio-economic
remain a number of challenges with achieving individual
groups have had an impact on Australian university
and mainstream change.
28
Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching McLaren & Kenny
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
Local response
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
The audit asked respondants to indicate ‘yes’ against the non-traditional modes if used, then describe how it
My colleague undertook a workplace audit of teaching
was applied to their teaching and learning. In relation
and learning modes in use at our faculty. He asked teaching
to each stated application (n=217), nearly 90 per
academics (n=102) whether they used one or more of
cent (n=195) of descriptions did not support the use
the following four non-traditional teaching modes. If they
of the specified modes. For example, in describing
were in use, the audit asked for detail on how they were
the application of active learning the majority of
applied:
respondants stated that they gave students questions and
1. Active learning: An umbrella term that refers to
case studies to work on during tutorials, which required
several models of instruction that ‘involves students
knowledge from the prescribed readings and lectures.
in doing things and thinking about the things they
This approach appeared more traditional in application
are doing’ (Bonwell & Eison, 1991), thereby shifting
because it did not necessarily shift responsibility
the responsibility of learning to learners.
for learning to learners. Likewise, the majority of
2. Blended learning: ‘Courses that integrate online with
respondants who said they applied blended learning
traditional face-to-face class activities in a planned,
provided little information to support they had deviated
pedagogically valuable manner; and where a portion
far from traditional lecture-tutorial modes. For example,
(institutionally defined) of face-to-face time is
many described that they engaged blended learning by
replaced by online activity’ (Picciano, 2011, p. 4).
providing students with recording of their lectures on
3. Flipped teaching: Material traditionally presented in
the university’s online learning site, as required by the
lectures are pre-recorded and students watch these
university. The use of the online sites for information
before attending class, while learning traditionally
did not achieve integration of online with face-to-face
done as homework is completed in class where
learning in a ‘planned, pedagogically valuable manner’
teacher assistance is available (Bergmann & Sams,
(Picciano, 2011, p. 4). The majority who said they used
2008).
blended learning, therefore, were not. While it appeared
4. Team-based learning: Practices involving independent
that a few respondants had partially flipped their
interactive
classrooms, a large majority of student work that was
learning in small groups that is aimed to improve
traditionally required to be done out-of-class remained
the application of learned material. The majority of
out-of-class. On the basis of descriptions provided, only
face-to-face time used for group work and group
one respondant implemented team-based learning.
assignments, which aim to develop self-managed
Others who facilitated small student group discussions
learning teams (Michaelsen & Sweet, 2008).
offered descriptions that had no apparent difference to
out-of-class
preparation
for
in-class
Forty-five faculty staff members, representing a response rate of approximately 44 per cent, responded
non-assessed group discussion activities in traditional tutorials.
to the audit by providing information about the teaching
Respondants who indicated they did not use one or more
and learning modes they used across 107 subjects.Thirty-
of the four non-traditional teaching and learning modes in
seven respondants (82 per cent) stated that they used at
one or more of their subjects were given the opportunity to
least one of the four non-traditional modes in at least one
explain. Eleven indicated their intention to change, seven
of their subjects; 78 per cent (n=83) of subjects applied
stated they did not have necessary equipment to ‘blend’
active learning; 69 per cent (n=64) blended learning;
or ‘flip’, four preferred traditional lecture-tutorial teaching
33 per cent (n=35) flipped teaching; and, 33 per cent
or provided various other reasons. Qualitative responses
(n=35) team based learning. This represented 217 stated
confirmed our prior anecdotal observations that the use of
applications of non-traditional teaching modes in 91
non-traditional teaching was limited; no more than 10 per
subjects. Respondants provided that 16 subjects used
cent of teaching academics in our faculty appeared to be
only traditional teaching modes, 20 subjects used a single
applying one or more of the non-traditional teaching and
non-traditional mode and 71 subjects used a combination
learning modes. This was despite mandatory professional
of more than one mode. Two respondants advised that,
development activities in teaching for all new teaching
while they used non-traditional modes, they each had one
academics employed at our university, and all four non-
subject where only traditional teaching modes were in
traditional modes being promoted as exemplars in central
use. Eight respondants (18 per cent), responsible for 14
and localised professional development activities available
subjects, applied only traditional lecture-tutorial modes.
to teaching staff.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching McLaren & Kenny
29
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Our observations is of low attendance rates by
before existing ones have had a chance to successfully
academic staff at our university’s centralised professional
diffuse. Finally, diffusion is affected by the characteristics
development programmes. Local programmes in our
of communicators and adopters, workplace culture,
faculty are often less well attended. On the other hand, we
institutional regimes (Lyytinen & Damsgaard, 2001) and
have seen that staff participate more in research support
complexity of the innovation (McLaren et al., 2008).
programmes. The Grattan Institute’s Mapping Australian
Rogers (2003) suggested that if barriers, facilitators,
Higher Education helps to explain this: they reported that
communicators and adopter types can be identified
research carries greater prestige among academics than
that it may be possible to develop strategies in support
teaching and cited an international survey of academics
of the spread of something new and according to the
from 18 countries in which Australia ranked fourth lowest
complexity of the innovation, stage of diffusion and the
in their preference for teaching when compared to research
characteristics of individuals involved.
(Coates et al., 2009, in Norton, 2013). This presents some
Rogers (2003) categorised individuals in a given social
obvious challenges for increasing uptake of non-traditional
system on the basis of time it took for them to adopt an
teaching, particularly when teaching in Australia is already
innovation (refer to category descriptors in Figure 1).
on the back foot. Change might be inevitable, but it is
Innovators and early adopters are more likely predisposed
organic and slow. In consideration, we explore diffusion of
to innovative behaviour, which require different strategies
innovation theory and consider the insights it offers into
to stimulate innovation as opposed to diffusing innovations
affecting the rate of teaching mode change.
among the mainstream majority. Moore (2006) extended on the work of Rogers (2003) and proposed the existence
Diffusion process and adopter types
of a ‘deep dividing chasm that separates the early minority of innovators and early adopters from the remaining
Diffusion of innovation is a process involving the
groups’. Moore (2006) suggested that an innovation must
communication of something new among individuals
be in use by approximately 16 per cent of the social
in a social system over time (Rogers, 2003). It relies
system (innovators and early adopters) before diffusion
predominantly on human capital and can be articulated
strategies aimed at the mainstream majority will have
as a series of five consequential stages; knowledge of
chance of success. The issue in our faculty is that with
an innovation, persuasion to consider or try it, decision to adopt, implementation of the innovation and evidence that sustained use is worthwhile. An ideal diffusion of innovation process would pass progressively through each of these stages. Once an innovation is in use by
the
mainstream
majority,
84 per cent of individuals (see Figure 1), diffusion is considered successful. But diffusion can also be iterative or become stagnant. For
example, adopters
may
reject or ‘put on hold’ the use of something new until there is more evidence that adoption will be worthwhile, or until there is time and resources to support adoption and capacity to evaluate viability for longer term use.As well, new innovations may render existing ones obsolete
30
Figure 1: Diffusion of innovation: Percentage and classification of adopters over time (Moore, 2006)
Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching McLaren & Kenny
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
no more than 10 per cent of teachers using one or more
‘adopting new technologies in teaching and learning’
of the non-traditional teaching and learning modes, there
(Wilson & Stacey, 2004 p. 40). Jacobsen (2000) argued
is insufficient human capital to communicate benefits
that early adopters often make the use of innovations
that may result from changing teaching mode. Hence
look relatively easy, thereby they mask the knowledge and
strategies to stimulate innovativeness should be priority
skills that the mainstream majority need in order to adopt
then, once sufficient innovation and early adoption is
it. Mainstream majorities are not necessarily adverse
achieved, strategies aimed at mainstream use are more
to evolutionary change, but if staff are not strategically
likely to achieve success.
paired they may not acquire adequate knowledge of an
Innovators and early adopters are more often
innovation or have the opportunity to work alongside
horizontally networked than the mainstream majority
appropriate others to learn. Without opportunity,
(Taylor & Newton, 2013). This means they will generally
perceived complexity may prevent adoption.
be motivated to go beyond their immediate workplace or university in search for new teaching ideas. They are
The need for change
‘venturesome’ (Rogers, 2003) educators when compared to
and
In response to changing contexts, Australian universities
laggards). On the other hand, the mainstream majority
conservative
others
(mainstream
majority
have variably applied cost-saving strategies that include
are more likely to be vertically networked. This means
employment freezes, streamlining of programmes and
that they are unlikely to venture outside their immediate
increased student:staff ratios (Bentley et al., 2014;
social system (Taylor & Newton, 2013) to learn new ways,
McDonald, 2013). Alongside neoliberal trends and
but pick up ideas locally from others around them.This is
global economic capitalism, this has made way for
why it is critical for diffusion to have sufficient innovators
universities to increasingly operate as global businesses
and early adopters in a given social system; that is, so
(Brown & Lauder, 2012; Daymon & Durkin, 2013). The
others can pick up ideas and observe proven benefits
competitiveness of Australian universities has grown
such as saved teaching time. It becomes decisive to target
to ensure a slice of domestic student markets, online
diffusion strategies according to whether individuals are
education, the expanding international higher education
innovators and early adopters, or majority others. For
market and research related grants (Von der Heidt, 2013).
example, greater incentives to innovate and share, then
This has an inevitable impact on the experiences of
localised strategies to diffuse among others. However,
teaching academics who are expected to manage titanic
the pressure for teaching academics ‘to do’ rather than
shifts in teaching and learning (Keirle & Morgan, 2011).As
to diffuse their teaching means that the minority of
well, the tendency toward reducing face-to-face contact
innovators and early adopters may not perform the role of
time with students (Symonds, 2014) pressures academics
sharing, especially if there is no obvious reward or benefit
to either be ‘leaner and meaner’ or to develop the
to themselves (McLaren et al., 2008).
pedagogical expertise (Keirle & Morgan, 2011) needed
While centralised programmes may be of interest to
to maintain quality education. The need to understand
horizontal networkers, others may not have the same
how to diffuse knowledge and methods among individual
regard. Wilson and Stacey (2004) articulated the benefits
teaching academics, to enable teaching ‘smarter’ is
of ‘a localised, faculty based approach to the provision of
necessary for individual wellbeing, student outcomes and
staff development’ that targets vertical networkers ‘with
university reputation.
staff appointed to work alongside of and provide peer
Reducing face-to-face time in our faculty often
support to others engaged in adopting new technologies
results in maintaining the length of traditional lectures
in teaching and learning, building on good practices
and shortening tutorials. Tutorials are the place that
that already exist’ (p. 40). At our faculty, there are one-
traditionally interaction and engagement in deep learning
on-one strategies in place to support communication of
is more likely. Hence reducing face-to-face time with
teaching innovations between colleagues. These include
students is done at the expense of interactive learning.
a peer review of teaching strategy and a colleague
Keeping traditional teaching as dominant, with reduced
assisted subject improvement programme. The problem
time for discussing learning materials, problem-solving
is that innovators and early adopters are not strategically
and thinking, puts the quality education at risk (Prideaux
paired with mainstream others. This means that there
et al., 2013; Wolf & Archer, 2013). In addition, changing
is more chance of communicating traditional teaching
one’s way of teaching may be limited by other local
or misunderstandings of non-traditional modes, than
challenges that include workload priorities in favour of
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching McLaren & Kenny
31
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
research, lack of incentives offered for staff to change and
perceptions that traditional teaching is easier. It cannot
limited knowledge of the time-benefits of non-traditional
be expected that every teaching academic will balance
teaching. Traditional teaching space and timetabling can
their regard for teaching equally with research, nor
also make implementing non-traditional teaching modes
make effort to change even when benefits are obvious.
difficult for those individuals without the pedagogical
Attending professional development or communicating
expertise to do so.
with peers about their teaching may be met with the
Our audit of non-traditional teaching indicated that
same disregard – simply, attitudes do exist that putting
the majority of respondants were engaged in traditional
more effort into teaching it is not supported, time-
teaching. According to Figure 1, they are the mainstream
consuming, not well regarded and not worthwhile.
majority and laggards. Communicating and subsequent
However, we suggest that if more effort is put into
diffusion of the four non-traditional teaching modes to
rewarding innovation and dissemination of teaching
these groups will be difficult if there is insufficient mass
innovations that more academic teachers might see the
of innovators and early adopters to cross the diffusion
value of being innovators themselves. With sufficient
chasm. As well, the majority who incorrectly said they
innovators and early adopters, increased levels of
used one or more of the non-traditional modes may not
communication needed to cross the chasm is more likely.
wish to engage in teaching and learning knowledge
Investing resources according to horizontal and vertical
acquisition if they believe they are already using them.
networker (adopter type and stage of diffusion) may
Some respondants fitted their traditional teaching
translate into cost-saving and benefits for individuals and
descriptions into the non-traditional audit descriptors
their institutions in the longer term.
and may have done so to prevent scrutiny or as a form of resistance. In our faculty, it appears that we have less than 10
Helen J McLaren and Paul L Kenny are respectively, Chair of Teaching and Learning and Dean of Education at the Faculty
per cent of teaching academics who are innovators and
of Social and Behavioural Sciences, Flinders University,
early adopters of non-traditional teaching and learning
Australia.
modes. Hence the human capital with the knowledge of educational theory and method necessary to communicate these modes to the mainstream majority is currently insufficient. Diffusion of innovation theory conveys that motivation to try something new and subsequent uptake is more likely once the diffusion of innovation chasm has been crossed, hence crossing the chasm is priority. That means growing a culture of innovation with the use of adequate incentives and rewards in the first instance. Once the early minority reach a critical mass of 16 per cent, they are the ones that need to be encouraged and supported to communicate their teaching modes to mainstream others. But when it is known that research carries greater prestige than teaching among academics at Australian universities, time spent sharing teaching and learning innovations rather than doing, to the expense of research, is a barrier. Stimulating innovation, early adoption and communication to others needs to carry sufficient benefits to be perceived as worthwhile.
Conclusion While the political and socio-economic environments currently informing Australian universities highlight that prestige and higher rewards are to be found in research, we acknowledge that the current system may give rise to
32
References Bentley, P.J., Goedegebuure, L. & Meek, V.L. (2014). Australian Academics, Teaching and Research: History, Vexed Issues and Potential Changes, in J.C. Shin, A. Arimoto, W.K. Cummins & U. Teichler (eds). Teaching and Research in Contemporary Higher Education, New York: Springer. Bergmann, J. & Sams, A. (2008). Remixing chemistry class. Learning and Leading with Technology, 36(4), 24-27. Bonwell, C.C. & Eison, J.A. (1991). Active Learning: Creating Excitement in the Classroom. 1991 ASHE-ERIC Higher Education Reports. Washington DC: The George Washington University. Bradley, D., Noonan, P., Nugent, H. & Scales, B. (2008). Review of Australian higher education: Final report. Canberra, ACT: Department of Education, Employment and Workplace Relations. Brown, P. & Lauder, H. (2012). The great transformation in the global labour market. Soundings, 51(51), 41-53. Campos-Sánchez, A., del Carmen Sánchez-Quevedo, M., Crespo-Ferrer, P.V., García-López, J.M. & Alaminos, M. (2013). Microteaching as a self-learning tool: students’ perceptions in the preparation and exposition of a microlesson in a tissue engineering course. Journal of Technology and Science Education, 3(2), 66-72. Cooper, L.L. (2007). Backing Australia’s future: teaching and learning in social work. Australian Social Work, 60(1), 94-106. Daymon, C. & Durkin, K. (2013). The Economic Capture of Criticality and the Changing University in Australia and the UK. In S. Majhanovich & M. A. GeoJaJa (eds), Economics, Aid and Education. Rotterdam: Sense Publishers. Department of Education Employment and Workplace Relations. (2009). Transforming Australia’s higher education system. Canberra: Commonwealth of Australia.
Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching McLaren & Kenny
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
Erol, C.S., Karatas, E.K., Ozen, Z. & Gulsecen, S. (2012). Cloud computing and some scenarios for its application in universities. European Researcher, 30(93), 1515-1526. Forbes-Mewett, H. & Nyland, C. (2013). Funding international student support services: tension and power in the university. Higher Education, 65(2), 181-192. Freire, P. (1974). Education for Critical Consciousness. London: Bloomsbury Publishing. Gursansky, D. & Le Sueur, E. (2012). Conceptualising field education in the twenty-first century: contradictions, challenges and opportunities. Social Work Education, 31(7), 914-931. Hopkins, K.M., Deal, K.H. & Bloom, J.D. (2005). Moving away from tradition: exploring the field experiences of part-time, older, and employment-based students. Journal of Social Work Education, 41(3), 573-585. Jacobsen, M. (2000). Excellent Teaching and Early Adopters of Instructional Technology. In J. Bourdeau & R. Heller (eds.), Proceedings of World Conference on Educational Multimedia, Hypermedia and Telecommunications 2000. Chesapeake: AACE. Johnson, S.A. & Luo, J. (2012). Engaging Chinese Students and Enhancing Leadership Development through Virtual Simulation: A Cross-cultural Perspective. In C. Wankel (ed.), Cutting-edge Technologies in Higher Education (Vol. 6, pp. 161-202). Bingley: Emerald Insight. Keirle, P.A. & Morgan, R.A. (2011). Teething problems in the academy: negotiating the transition to large-class teaching in the discipline of history. Journal of University Teaching and Learning Practice, 8(2), 3. Kenny, P. L. (2011). Team based learning and the performance of accounting undergraduates. Paper presented at the Accounting Educators’ Conference, Melbourne: RMIT. http://ssrn.com/abstract=2340840. Kenny, P. L. (2012). Assessing the impact of team based learning and the examination performance of undergraduate taxation law students. Paper presented at the Australasian Tax Teachers Association National Conference, Sydney: University of Sydney. http://sydney.edu.au/law/parsons/ATTA/docs_pdfs/ conference_papers/Kenny.pdf. Khoo, S. E., Hugo, G., & McDonald, P. (2008). Which Skilled Temporary Migrants Become Permanent Residents and Why? International Migration Review, 42(1), 193-226. Klinger, C. M., & Murray, N. (2012). Tensions in higher education: widening participation, student diversity and the challenge of academic language/literacy. Widening Participation and Lifelong Learning, 14(1), 27-44. Kucukaydin, I. & Cranton, P. (2012). Participatory learning in formal adult education contexts. International Journal of Adult Vocational Education and Technology, 3(1), 1-12. Lawrence, J., Burton, L., Summers, J., Noble, K. & Gibbings, P. (2013). An Associate Dean’s Community of Practice: Rising to the Leadership Challenges of Engaging Distance Students using Blended Models of Learning and Teaching. In J. Willems, B. Tynan & R. James (eds.), Global Challenges and Perspectives in Blended and Distance Learning (pp. 212-222). Hershey: IGI Publishing. Lyytinen, K., & Damsgaard, J. (2001). What’s wrong with the diffusion of innovation theory? In M. A. Ardis & B. L. Marcolin (Eds.), Diffusing software product and process innovations (pp. 172-190). New York: Springer.
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
McLaren, H.J., Gibson, C., Arney, F., Scott, D. & Brown, L. (2008). Sowing the seeds of innovation: exploring strategies for sustaining the spread of innovative approaches in child and family work. Paper presented at the The History and Future of Social Innovation, Adelaide: The Hawke Institute. http://www.unisa. edu.au/hawkeinstitute/publications/social-innovation/. Michaelsen, L.K. & Sweet, M. (2008). The essential elements of team‐based learning. New directions for teaching and learning, 2008(116), 7-27. Mirk, S.M., Burkiewicz, J.S. & Komperda, K.E. (2010). Student perception of a wiki in a pharmacy elective course. Currents in Pharmacy Teaching and Learning, 2(2), 72-78. Moore, G. (2006). Crossing the Chasm (2002 Revised ed.). New York: HarperCollins. Norton, A. (2013). Mapping Australian Higher Education (2013 version). Carlton, Victoria: Grattan Institute. Picciano, A.G. (2011). Introduction to the special issue on transitioning to blended learning. Journal of Asynchronous Learning Networks, 15(1), 3-7. Prideaux, D., Lindemann, I. & Cottrell, A. (2013). Community and Workplace Expectations of Graduates in the Health Professions. In S. Loftus, T. Gerzina, J. Higgs, M. Smith & E. Duffy (eds.), Educating Health Professionals: Becoming a University Teacher (pp. 71-82). Roterdam: Sense Publishers. Ramsden, P. (2003). Learning to Teach in Higher Education. RoutledgeFalmer: London. Robertson, M. (2014). Benchmarking Teaching Performance in Universities. In J.J.F. Forrest (ed.), University Teaching: International Perspectives (pp. 275304). New York: Routledge. Rogers, E. (2003). Diffusion of Innovations (5th ed.). New York: Free Press. Sawir, E. (2013). International Students and Internationalisation of Higher Education. Journal of International Students, 3(1), III. Steenkamp, L.P. & Rudman, R. J. (2013). Incorporating online tools in tertiary education. Contemporary Issues in Education Research, 6(4), 365-372. Symonds, M. R. (2014). Lecturing and other face-to-face teaching–too much or too little? An assessment based on student feedback and fail rates. Higher Education Research & Development, (ahead-of-print), 1-11. Taylor, J.A. & Newton, D. (2013). Beyond blended learning: a case study of institutional change at an Australian regional university. The Internet and Higher Education, 18(July), 54-60. Von der Heidt, T. (2013). Continuous Improvement in e-Teams for Collaborative Market Planning. In T. Issa, P. Isaias & P. Kommers (eds.), Information Systems and Technology for Organisations in a Networked Society (pp. 167-191). Hershey: Business Science Reference. Wilson, G. & Stacey, E. (2004). Online interaction impacts on learning: teaching the teachers to teach online. Australian Journal of Educational Technology, 20(1), 33-48. Wolf, K. & Archer, C. (2013). Managing ambiguity: a critical reflection on a truly global learning experience. In Design, develop, evaluate: The core of the learning environment. Paper presented at the Proceedings of the 22nd Annual Teaching Learning Forum, Perth: Murdoch University. Retrieved from http://ctl.curtin.edu. au/professional_development/conferences/tlf/tlf2013/refereed/wolf.html.
McDonald, G. (2013). Does size matter? The impact of student–staff ratios. Journal of Higher Education Policy and Management, 35(6), 652-667.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Motivating change from lecture-tutorial modes to less traditional forms of teaching McLaren & Kenny
33
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
â&#x20AC;&#x2122;
R
E V
I
E
W
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science A model based on the analysis of the literature B J Cridge & A G Cridge University of Otago
Every year fewer students are electing to take university level science courses, particularly physics. This situation has led universities and employers to try and encourage more students into science subjects through the development of numerous science outreach initiatives such as guest lectures and summer schools. Much of this work is of an ad-hoc nature, with little understanding of the underlying motivations and conditions that guide studentsâ&#x20AC;&#x2122; subject selection. Therefore, we have analysed a range of literature sources to develop a simple model for school student engagement that can help guide university-initiated science outreach programmes. This model takes into account factors such as the different life stages of the student, the myriad influences that affect career decisions, and resource availability. As part of this work we also present an overview of the research around increasing progression into higher education. As experienced practitioners and researchers in science outreach we have developed an easy-to-use set of guidelines that are applicable in the real-world situation of limited budgets, time and staff resources. Keywords: outreach, widening participation, universities, science, marketing, STEM
Introduction
intervention. In this paper we discuss a model for student recruitment that looks at these approaches and develops
Universities around the world invest heavily in student
a framework of what interventions are most appropriate
recruitment. Often marketing initiatives are run under
and when they should be carried out. We describe the
multiple budget headings including recruitment, outreach,
literature on factors that influence student decision-making
equity and diversity programmes. Overlap in purpose
concerning career choice and university attendance. We
is common, with almost all of these initiatives aiming,
then bring this disparate information together in a simple
ultimately, to increase student participation. However,
model that can be applied across the marketing, recruitment
often there is disparity between the approaches to
and equity teams to allow them to work together towards
student recruitment with some areas favouring a mass-
a common goal, viz. increasing student participation at the
target approach and others a personal one-on-one lifetime
tertiary level. In this study we use literature from science
34
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
â&#x20AC;&#x2122;
R
E V
I
E
W
and science education as these are areas most familiar to
within their chosen field of study) and price (fees, living
the authors, however this does not preclude the results
costs and distance from home) (Maringe, 2006). In
from being used in other discipline areas.
response to this consumerist approach from students, universities market extensively to students in their last
The problem
years of high school. These campaigns are generally based on business-led market theory (concepts such as
The number of students studying a science is decreasing
brand-loyalty, profitability, market segmentation) (Angulo,
worldwide. This trend is especially prevalent in OECD
Pergelova & Rialp, 2010; Bennett & Ali-Choudhury, 2009;
countries whose governments and universities are
Canterbury, 2000). This model pits one university against
expressing concerns over the decreasing numbers
another and often one faculty against another, in direct
of students that are interested in pursuing scientific
competition (as determined by the capitalist model) and
careers. In the US the numbers of students expressing
does not attempt to engage with the lifelong journey of
an interest in science throughout their school career has
the student and their educational choices.
been decreasing year on year. International comparisons
Within the larger trend of falling student numbers
suggest that American students are falling behind their
in sciences there is ongoing concern regarding the
international counterparts; an effect that is concerning
participation rates of women and minorities in the
at the tertiary education and governmental level (Stake
physical sciences (National Academies, 2005; Bray &
& Nickens, 2005). This effect is particularly noted within
Timewell, 2011; Department of Education, 2006; Mulvey
the physical sciences where university enrolment
& Nicholson, 2012). This problem is often approached
growth has been static or experiencing minimal growth,
separately from pure recruitment, generally under the
while enrolment in the biological sciences or non-
banner of equity or widening participation programmes
science courses grows rapidly (Stake & Nickens, 2005;
(Cuny & Aspray,2002;Frieze & Blum,2002;Gale et al.,2010).
Mulvey & Nicholson, 2012). This trend is at odds with
The result of this is a duality within the university system,
international government policies that are looking to
with one arm focussing on increasing recruitment within
science and technology as economic saviours (Business
a marketing or economics paradigm and another arm
Roundtable, 2005; Higher Education Research Institute,
tackling equity issues by running programmes targeted at
2010). Science and technology are seen as a new way for
a particular type of student (Licata & Frankwick, 1996; Hill,
economies to generate products and in turn increase the
Corbet & St Rose, 2010). While marketing strategies tend
gross domestic product. Without science development
to focus on mass-media campaigns and high spending,
many countries fear they will be unable to generate
equity programmes tend to be focussed, individualistic
the new high-value products of the future (National
and developed on a limited budget. Often these two
Academies, 2005; Bush, 2006; European Commission,
sectors within a university or science faculty are working
2004; Ministry of Science, 2008). The lack of recruitment
independently of one another and rarely, if ever, are
of students into science courses at university is attracting
these objectives combined and co-ordinated (Gale et al.,
high level attention and governments are expecting
2010). However, as graduate numbers decrease alongside
universities to address this issue.
a strong politically-led agenda to increase science and
University marketing is a multifaceted and expanding field. The new economic model of universities as
technology student numbers, a new approach to student requirements needs to be undertaken.
businesses means that many institutions are beginning
This work uses the framework of narrative review to
to charge fees for study (historically more common in
assess the literature around students progressing from the
the US) and this in turn drives students into the role of
secondary school environment through to university. An
consumer (Harrison-Walker, 2010). This drives a feedback
extensive review of literature from differing research fields
loop whereby universities are forced into a highly
was searched through online databases in order to develop
competitive marketing drive to recruit students (Harrison-
a thorough understanding of current research knowledge
Walker, 2010). Research into the factors that influence
surrounding factors that influence student choice and
student choice in the latter years of high school shows
study habits. Database searches included information
that they conform to a 7 â&#x20AC;&#x2DC;Pâ&#x20AC;&#x2122; marketing model, analysing
retrieved from ERIC, PubMed, EconLit, Intute, PsycInfo,
programme, price, promotion, people, prospectus,
Web of Knowledge, ScienceDirect, Scopus and Google
prominence and place. Of these factors students prioritise
Scholar. Evidence was included based on an assessment
the programme (whether an institution is well-regarded
of the research representing the overall consensus of
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
35
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
the given field at the time this article was developed. By
personality type (realistic, investigative, artistic, social,
combining research from a large variety of sources, with
enterprising or conventional) whereas Super’s theory
our own experience in outreach development, we suggest
takes a developmental approach and supposes that career
a programme that works alongside students to develop
choice is a fluid process that develops over an individual
and maintain an interest in science that universities can
life span (Holland, 1997; Super, Savickas & Super 1996).
use as a framework for increasing the numbers in science
Both of these ideals are expressed within the Social
and technology courses. This methodological framework
Learning Theory of Career Decision Making (SLTCDM).
allows the development of an informed rationale for
This theory describes four factors relevant to career
decisions, based on current evidence. While a systematic
decision making (reviewed in Niles & Hartung, 2000):
review of the literature would be considered more robust
• Genetic ability: inherited traits such as sex, intelligence,
in terms of overall quality of data, the narrative review
athletic ability, artistic talent etc.
allows a wider scope and assimilation of current resources
• Environmental conditions: social, cultural and political
from a wider range of academic fields (Collins & Fraser,
factors such as financial sponsorship programmes,
2005). A systematic review necessitates focussed search
family traditions, familial, and societal expectations.
criteria with the aim of reducing reviewer bias. In the
• Learning experiences: the combinations of natural
current work, this narrowed perspective would eliminate
talent with positive learning experiences, exposure to
the ability to synthesise information from diverse sources
positively reinforcing messages and situations such as
i.e. from education, science and economics. Indeed the
good teachers, museums, science clubs or role models.
aim was to introduce an author voice to interpret and craft
• Task approach skills: work habits, mental set, emotional
the information into a widely applicable model.Therefore,
responses and problem-solving skills.
in this instance the format of the narrative review, with its
The Social Cognitive Career Choice Model (Bandura,
wider, less-rigid, search criteria was deemed appropriate.
1986; Fouad, Smith & Zao, 2002; Lent, Brown & Hackett,
The results in this paper differ markedly from others in
1994) is another theory that highlights similar factors as
the area in the diversity of information presented. Most
expressed above. Under this model the important criteria
literature focuses narrowly on a single research question,
for career choice are (from Hazari et al., 2010):
examining the effect of one factor at a time on student
• Curriculum elements: specific content or curriculum
engagement (Ferre et al., 2013; Frølich & Stensaker, 2010;
designs which enhance interest in a particular subject
Luscombe, Lewis & Biggs, 2013).This paper diverges from
area.
these empirically driven studies and strives to take a step back to examine the interplay of multiple factors in a complex behavioural array. For this reason, the results that follow are organised by theme rather than discipline.
• Classroom/school characteristics: class size, resourcing, public or private education, single sex etc. • Teacher characteristics: equitable behaviour, communication, background. • Student characteristics: educational ability, test scores,
The evidence
socio-economic background, self-perception. • Relationships: with peers, family, role models.
How do people decide what they want to do for a job and
• Out of school experiences: informal education
when do they make these decisions? These two questions
opportunities (e.g. museums, science clubs), childhood
lie at the heart of any quest to understand how to increase
experiences.
the number of students that study science. Without a
By examining the two theories side by side it becomes
comprehensive understanding of how people choose
obvious that both internal and external factors are at play
their career path, we can have little hope of changing
when developing a career choice. Both theories suggest
or influencing their choices. Strangely, this knowledge is
that career decisions are linked to the development of
often omitted from outreach programme design. We will
the individual through their life history. This suggests a
present an overview of the current theories around career
pattern as follows: Both theories work on the assumption
development and how this knowledge pertains to student
that career choice stems from an internal self-interest but
recruitment into tertiary level science courses.
that this interest is subject to external forces. In addition,
How do people make career decisions?
there is an underlying belief that career choice is linked to a student’s intrinsic element of interest in the subject
Holland’s 1997 theory of vocational personalities
or career field. However, it is the author’s view that this is
suggests that people match their career choices to their
a modern, largely Western, way of viewing career options
36
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
based on limited evidence that Asian youth are more likely
The oldest children in the study were ten years old and
to be influenced by parental expectations than intrinsic
by this stage many had made preliminary decisions
factors (Ma and Yeh, 2005; Mau, 2000). The prioritising
about their career track.The influence of the parents was
of self-interest above societal and parental judgements
often obvious in terms of the level of ambition (aiming
echoes the increasing predominance of individual self-
for careers requiring higher education or not) and the
worth that is often observed in youth culture in Western
subtle support given for some subjects above others (for
societies today. This individualism is not necessarily a
example choices of access to extra-curricular clubs and
negative factor but time may prove it to be a social trend
activities) (Buzzanell et al. 2011).
rather than a stable construct.
From the earliest age, parents guide their children in
In terms of career choice, the internal factors combine
developing skills and oversee their academic advancement.
with external factors to develop a ‘career identity’. Within
As children naturally gravitate towards careers which they
science, development of a career identity is often thought
enjoy, and enjoyment is often closely linked to academic
to be heavily influenced by whether or not a student
achievement, parents have a subtle ongoing influence on
identifies with scientists and can visualise themselves
career choice (Aschbacher et al., 2010; Beaton et al., 1996;
as a scientist (Aschbacher, Li & Roth, 2010; Cleaves,
Shrigley, 1990; Simpson & Steve Oliver, 1990). Mothers
2005; Maltese & Tai, 2009; Stake & Nickens, 2005). This
in particular have been shown to influence self-belief
projection is described as the potential self or possible
in terms of career (Eccles, 2011; Eccles (Parsons) et al.,
future self (Stake & Nickens, 2005) and is influenced by
1983; Jacobs & Eccles, 2000). Bleeker and Jacobs (2004)
several factors.
demonstrated that mothers’ beliefs about their children’s
The theories mentioned above provide some clues as to
abilities in maths and science were shaped by gender
the drivers at play in the development of career decisions.
stereotype and were highly predictive. The mothers’
Important external factors are parents, teachers and peer
beliefs were also shown to influence career choice
interactions and societal expectations. Balanced with this
and helped determine whether or not children had an
are the internal factors of self-awareness, self-motivation,
internal belief that they could achieve in science or maths
development and sustained interest in a topic.
(Emmanuelle, 2009; Bleeker & Jacobs, 2004).
The role of parents
for a student, and mediating the transition to a higher
From the earliest age, parents are an important force in
education organisation. Parents who have negotiated
our lives; therefore it is not surprising that this influence
their own way through the tertiary system are better
extends to the selection of a career. The simplest analysis
equipped to assist their children with this transition, and
shows that parental education almost directly correlates
tertiary qualified parents are more likely to be financially
to university ambitions (Roksa & Potter, 2011; Schuette,
secure (Downs et al., 2008). Parents who are unsure about
Ponton & Charlton, 2012). This is most often seen within
the demands of higher education, or are worried about
the context of students who are the ‘first-in-family’ to
the cost, may give negative reinforcement to students,
attend university. Such students are difficult to attract into
particularly if the students are wanting to follow highly
the tertiary setting and many outreach programmes are
competitive subjects or those with a high level of difficulty
designed to work alongside these students to increase their
(threatening long term success) (Downs et al., 2008;
aspirations to include higher education (Gale et al., 2010).
Kahneman & Tversky, 1984). Many widening participation
A final role of parents is in providing financial support
Parental influence has been demonstrated to be one
projects aim to address these logistical concerns but may
of the earliest and most powerful effectors surrounding
miss many of the subtle long-term effects of the family
career decisions. Buzzanell, Berkelaar & Kisselburgh
environment (Gale et al., 2010).
(2011) interviewed 800 children from China, Lebanon, Belgium and the United States in order to examine how
The role of teachers
stable the effect of parent is on career choices across
Particularly during adolescence, teachers exert a powerful
societies. Their research shows that, independent of
influence on career selection. The most obvious route for
societal influences, parents are a major influence on the
this pressure is through the development of self-belief
perception of work and career. From as young as four years
and subject-specific achievement. The role of quality
old children were aware of the work that their parents
teaching in student achievement is highly controversial
did, were internalising positive and negative impressions
(Cohen, 1981; Goldhaber & Brewer, 1997; Hattie, 2004;
of work and beginning to understand different careers.
Rockoff, 2004; Rubie-Davies, Hattie & Hamilton, 2006).
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
37
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Work by John Hattie demonstrates that, after the students
enjoyable and appropriate (Duncan, 1993; Eccles, 2011;
own ability and drive to succeed, teachers are the most
Patrick et al., 1999). These factors are closely linked to
important factor in achievement at school (Hattie, 2004).
the ongoing motivation that a student has for a particular
His research over several years suggests that teachers
activity, and how much time they are likely to devote
contribute up to 30 per cent of the variance in student
to developing their ability within that field (Patrick et
achievement and, as such, quality teaching is vital to the
al., 1999). Stake and Nickens (2005) demonstrate that
school system (Hattie, 2004). This is obviously important
having peers engaged and supportive of science activities
from a career selection point of view as a good science
positively encouraged individual expectations of a future
teacher may increase the sense of achievement of students
life as a scientist. Programmes which allow the participants
in this area and therefore help to sustain their interest in
to form social networks with scientifically-minded peers
the subject. This factor is particularly pertinent to the
are likely to have a greater long-term impact (Davies &
physical sciences, which are historically deemed difficult
Kandel, 1981; Stake & Nickens, 2005).
subjects to master (Cheng, Payne & Witherspoon, 1995;
Diverse cultures value different subjects and career
Crawley & Black, 1992). These subjects are also often
choices. Asian families are reported to favour scientific
linked to a parental belief of inherent ability, either you
careers as they are associated with long-term advantages
‘get’ science or you do not (Bleeker & Jacobs, 2004; Eccles,
(Woodrow, 1996). Conversely, other cultures may perceive
2011; Gouthier, Manzoli & Ramani, 2008; Kelly, 1981). A
school-based science as a Western construct and therefore
good teacher may be able to mould these expectations
struggle to connect with it (Lemke, 2001).The underlying
or experiences and so make science more accessible to
epistemologies of science may be an anathema to cultural
a wider range of students. Quality science teaching is
knowledge and therefore science may be devalued or
therefore an important component in sustaining scientific
shunned within certain cultural contexts (Cunningham,
interest throughout a child’s school career.
2000). Therefore, in some cultures science is highly
In addition to maintaining self-belief and supporting
valued and a scientific career is seen as prestigious. In
academic achievement, the role of the teacher often
other cultures science is not a worthy pursuit and as such
extends into the realm of mentor. Students seek teachers’
children are less likely to be encouraged and supported
views on higher education providers, possible courses
in their studies. These underlying cultural biases also
and expectations of achievement (Hazari et al. 2010;
affect other influencers such as parental support, peer
Munro & Elsom, 2000). The teachers’ own backgrounds,
acceptance in addition to the student’s personal internal
education, social networks and beliefs strongly influence
motivation (Hartung, 2002; Kim, Li & Liang, 2002).
how they communicate with the students about their options in higher education. This set of unconscious
Career counsellors and role models
behaviours and expectations can be referred to as the
Other individuals have been hypothesised to influence
teachers habitus, the ‘durable, transposable dispositions’
student career choices. However evidence from the
that are developed early in an individual’s life and
physical sciences suggests that the impact of career
manifest in manner, style, gait and language (from Oliver
counsellors, role models and guest speakers is minimal.
& Kettley, 2010). A teacher’s expectations, knowledge
The role of career counsellors is similar to the role of
and sense of achievement within science can profoundly
teachers, with similar issues and problems around
influence a student’s perception of their own abilities.
habitus expected to be relevant. This means that the
This is particularly relevant to the reported gender bias
career counsellors own expectations and life experience
within the physical sciences. Teachers who believe,
of careers will influence their advice (Oliver & Kettley,
often unconsciously, that males are better than females
2010). Research has demonstrated that the effectiveness
in the mathematical and physical sciences transfer this
of career counselling is directly related to the motivation
expectation to their students and their understanding of
and abilities of the individual counsellor (Taurere, 2010).
their potential career options (Aschbacher et al., 2010;
For the purposes of this work we have grouped career
Jones & Wheatley, 1990; Osborne, Simon & Collins, 2003).
counsellors with science subject teachers with the intention that resources should be targeted to individuals
Peer interactions and society expectations
with sufficient interest and willingness to engage with the processes.
Adolescents often seek the support and approval of peers.
Some studies have suggested that role models can
Peer support influences what students think is valuable,
influence, if not alter, career decisions (Maltese &
38
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Tai, 2009). Programmes implemented around raising
2003). It is notable that these early decisions are relatively
aspirations, especially for students from low socio-
stable (Helwig, 2008; Schuette et al., 2012;Tai et al., 2006).
economic areas, often utilise role models to showcase
When interviewing scientists and graduate students of
possibilities outside the immediate environment of
science, Maltese and Tai (2009) highlighted a trend for
the student (Gale et al., 2010). The use of role models
people who select this trajectory to decide early in life.
is supported and acknowledged but their influence is
Sixty-five per cent of interviewees reported that their
often compromised by the ongoing, direct influences of
interest in science developed before their middle school
parents, teachers and peers.
years (around 11-14 years of age) with a further 30 per
When do students make career decisions?
cent indicating that their interest in science developed during middle or high school (11-18 years). Young men
The two main forms of outreach, marketing or widening
tended to report an interest in science earlier than young
participation programmes, are largely aimed at students
women with 80 per cent of male interviewees declaring
studying at high school. Generally the youngest students
that they had decided on a science career before they
that universities interact with are at least 14 years
attended high school. Female students were slightly more
old. The exception to this is through participation in
inclined to develop science interest during their high
science festivals such as ‘Scientriffic’ (Wrexham, Wales)
school years (14 per cent of female students developed
or
‘Incredible
(Auckland, New
Science’ Zealand).
These initiatives are generally collaborative and may target younger students through exciting science shows or experiment demonstrations. Criticism
is
often
raised
however, by faculty members
their science interest in high
What stands out about the student choices during high school is that negative influences are more powerful than positive ones. ... It is common for students, females in particular, to select out of science subjects as they are no longer able to imagine their future selves as scientists...
that these events are a waste
school as compared with 10 per cent of male students) (Maltese & Tai, 2009). By
16
years
of
age,
roughly half way through high school, the majority of students have selected their probable career path and are starting to refine their
of resource as they don’t
subject options (Brown et
allow direct interaction with the target audience (Bray,
al., 2011; Lindahl, 2003; Schuette et al., 2012).What stands
2010). Should universities be trying to engage a younger
out about the student choices during high school is that
audience or should resources be prioritised to students in
negative influences are more powerful than positive
the final years of high school? When do students make the
ones. During this time female students are vulnerable
decision about what to study?
to influences such as poor academic performance and
As outlined above, children are exposed to work and
peer- and self-perception (Cleaves, 2005). It is common
careers from a very early age (Buzzanell et al., 2011). From
for students, females in particular, to select out of science
as young as two or three years children are aware of their
subjects as they are no longer able to imagine their future
own parents’ work situation and start to develop their
selves as scientists (Aschbacher et al., 2010; Stake &
own understanding of work options. By age five or six
Nickens, 2005). This vulnerability to negative messages
children can confidently answer the question ‘so, what do
is one that is often overlooked in the development of
you want to be when you grow up?’ Answers are typically
outreach and marketing programmes.
stereotypical (e.g. ‘I want to drive trains/be a footballer/
This evidence suggests that universities often target
be a singer’) but demonstrate that both children and
students too late to effect real change in their career
adults are already starting to focus on future career
options. If outreach programmes are to attract students
options. Research demonstrates that throughout primary
into science, they need to address the wide range of
school students are evaluating, investigating and selecting
influences on students’ lives, and engagement must be
possible career options (Brown, Ortiz-Nuñez & Taylor,
made with students while they are making their career
2011; Buzzanell et al., 2011; Helwig, 2008; Lindahl, 2003;
choices. The information available to date suggests that
Schuette et al., 2012; Tai, Qi Liu, Maltese & Fan, 2006). It
to be effective in increasing the number of students
is widely accepted that by around 10-12 years of age (late
electing to take science subjects, universities need to
primary school) students have largely decided the general
put in place programmes that work with students before
field of work that they want to be involved in (Lindahl,
they reach high school, and there needs to be a greater
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
39
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
â&#x20AC;&#x2122;
R
E V
I
E
W
understanding of the importance of science during the primary years. The general lack of recruitment initiatives and focus on scientific literacy for younger students can compound the lack of understanding of science careers and career options (Osborne & Dillon, 2008; Education Review Office, 2012). What turns students on to science when they are young? Why do some students gravitate towards science subjects and reject others? Evidence suggests that those students that persist with science found it interesting and fun from a young age. They felt able to achieve within the science context and they found it relevant to their world. Students that continued along the science path to tertiary study often have the support of their families and it is within accepted social norms for them to pursue a highly academic and perhaps financially risky career path. They were supported by teachers who made science fun, relevant, and achievable. This assisted them in forming peer groups where studying science was the norm that in turn allowed them the space to achieve to a high level. With all these competing factors and inputs can universities hope to have any influence? We think the answer is yes, but a rethink of how they utilise and mobilise their resources needs to happen.
Fig. 1. An outline of a new model for universities to engage school students with science
The model Compton, 2012). In terms of child development the preOur model rests on three key ideals; engagement with
teen years are associated with a period of exploration
potential students needs to happen early, be sustained
where the individual is more receptive to new
over the life of the student and reach beyond the student
concepts; younger students are therefore more open to
to encompass their parents, teachers and peers. This
alternative career options (Eccles, 1999). This openness
structure is illustrated in the diagram in Figure 1 and
can be harnessed and built upon to open up student
explained in more detail in the following sections.
expectations and possible future selves.
Engagement needs to happen sooner
Engagement needs to be sustained
Based on the evidence, we believe that universities
One off, one day events are easy to run but they are
should be involved with, and support initiatives, that
unlikely to have significant impact amongst the variety
allow primary-aged students to participate in science.
of other factors in the life of a student. To be really
These activities should be designed to be fun and
effective the university needs to be seen as an ongoing
motivational, showcasing science as part of everyday
part of the student journey (France and Compton,
life and relevant to everyone. The criticism that younger
2012). However, it should be realised that through their
students are unlikely to follow into higher education,
mid-teens students are uniquely sensitive to negative
that the university has no place in this space, are
images (Eccles, 2011; Freeman, 1997). For this reason we
unfounded. Higher education institutes have access to
suggest that this is the ideal time to support achievement
myriad resources and people that are of immense value
through indirect channels. Career literature identifies the
to the primary school sector. In addition, under-graduate
strong influence that role models play at this time of life,
and graduate students can gain a wealth of skills through
including parents, teachers, peers and career counsellors
interacting with young students. Universities should
(Hodkinson & Sparkes, 1997). Engaging with students in
encourage site-visits for primary aged children to allow
the middle-school (intermediate) and early high school
them to view university scientific facilities (France &
years through these alternate routes could be a key to the
40
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
â&#x20AC;&#x2122;
R
E V
I
E
W
success for these programmes (Catsambis, 2001; Fadigan
perhaps 4,000 students over a lifetime. Teachers can be
and Hammrich, 2004). The final phase of interaction is
a universityâ&#x20AC;&#x2122;s best advocates. Great teachers help develop
during the last two years of high school. Outreach during
great scientists; their influence should not be under-
this time is often a pure marketing exercise, choosing
estimated (Munro & Elsom, 2000). We would suggest that
one institution above another. It is not a time to convert
universities working to support and develop teachers,
students to science or science disciplines as these
through offering continuing training and science
messages are likely to be lost. Few, if any, students are
upskilling through access to university resources, is an
motivated to change their career focus at this late stage of
effective and cost-minimal way to increase engagement.
their development (Cleaves, 2005). Programmes need to
A vast array of such programmes have been undertaken
focus on the advantages (price, courses available, lifestyle
worldwide with the best examples using a partnership
and prestige) of one institution over another. Parents
model and mutual cooperation to have an ongoing impact
are also likely to be very interested in this stage of the
on student engagement and learning (Richmond, 1996;
decision-making and should not be excluded from these
Tanner, Chatman & Allen, 2003). Teacher open days have
discussions (Maringe, 2006).
been used successfully to market universities to teachers
Engagement needs to include parents, teachers and peers
but this should be used with caution around the habitus of the teacher (Oliver & Kettley, 2010). Peers are also important.To develop peer relationships
Universities are often very willing to talk directly to senior
we suggest that at least some programmes are formed to
students but are less interested in working alongside
challenge school groups. If a student is able to remain
teachers, career counsellors or parents to explore career
within their normal cohort of friends, and this group
options.This is a mistake.The literature clearly shows that
is anti-science then it is unlikely that the student will
these external people play an important role in guiding
feel comfortable pursuing study in science. Activities
and supporting the individual.
such as summer schools, site visits and research days
Parents perform an increasingly important role in
which allow for group interaction (not merely sitting
guiding the career choices of their children. The actions,
in a lecture group for a day) are all valuable tools for
expectations and prejudices of the parents are absorbed by
introducing students from a range of backgrounds into
students from an early age. One avenue for increasing the
a science-supportive environment (Jacobs et al., 1998;
number of students in science is to increase the science
Packard & Nguyen, 2003). Institutions should be looking
literacy of the parents. Outreach programmes such as
to provide environments where a student who may
science festivals play an important role in normalising
be isolated in terms of science interest in their local
science within a family (Riise, 2008). Often the challenge is
school can develop networks with peers that support
reaching out to communities and families where science is
and encourage science achievement, even if this is
not valued; such families are not the ones that traditionally
maintained across geographical boundaries.
attend science fairs (Dawson & Jensen, 2011). Events that
We suggest universities work towards an integrated
take science to non-traditional locations (supermarkets;
policy for recruitment for students into scientific courses.
community halls) are worthy of consideration.These events
This should start with sparking an interest in science
need to be supported by the provision of good written
(at primary level), through science fairs or outreach
material that parents can take with them. These need to
programmes that target both parents and children.
outline what careers are available in science, the earning
The second phase (through intermediate and lower
potential for BSc graduates, what courses are available and
secondary) should sustain interest. This is best achieved
the application pathways.
through an indirect method particularly through working
Supporting quality teaching is another key area. What
with teachers. Models for this might include teacher
makes an excellent teacher and how to support quality
professional development courses or teacher conferences
teaching is an issue fraught with difficulties (Hattie,
and may involve either on site visits or outreach
2011), a complete discussion of which is beyond the
programmes as appropriate. The last phase is to convert
scope of this paper. However, ongoing discussions on
a studentâ&#x20AC;&#x2122;s interest in science into tertiary enrolments
how universities could support quality teaching should
which can be done through open days, marketing
be encouraged and it should be noted that supporting
material and summer schools. Marketing material needs
local teachers has a multiplying effect, each teacher will
to be inclusive of parents and caregivers as they are highly
be teaching between 20 and 100 students a year and
influential in decision-making at this time.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
41
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
Of course, it is accepted that currently many of the suggestions presented here are not supported by data – proving effectiveness. Many of the programmes outlined here as suggestions and examples have been drawn from the author’s personal experiences and conversations.With many of these projects there is little or no resource (money or time) to complete comprehensive evaluation of the
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Bandura, A. (1986). Social foundations of thought and action: A social cognitive theory. Englewood Cliffs, NJ: Prentice Hall. Beaton, A., Martin, M. O., Mullis, I., Gonzalez, E. J., Smith, T. A. & Kelley, D. L. (1996). Science achievement in the middle years: IEA’s Third International Mathematics and Science Study. Chestnut Hill, MA: Boston College. Bennett, R. & Ali-Choudhury, R. (2009). Prospective Students’ Perceptions of University Brands: An Empirical Study. Journal of Marketing for Higher Education, 19(1), 85-107. doi: 10.1080/08841240902905445.
in evaluation including under-resourcing, biasing towards
Bleeker, M. M. & Jacobs, J. E. (2004). Achievement in Math and Science: Do Mothers’ Beliefs Matter 12 Years Later? Journal of Educational Psychology, 96(1), 97-109. doi: 10.1037/0022-0663.96.1.97.
success (to ensure ongoing funding), confidentiality
Bray, B. J. (2010). [Incredible Science, is it the right thing to do?].
clauses or just confounding by the huge range of factors
Bray, B. J. & Timewell, E. (2011). Gender equality in New Zealand Science. New Zealand Science Review, 68(4), 140-143. Retrieved from http://www.scientists. org.nz/files/journal/2011-68/NZSR_68_4.pdf.
programme. This is coupled with wide-ranging problems
that encompass career selection. Measuring the success of ventures such as open days, outreach programmes and teacher partnerships with sufficient power to prove effectiveness is almost impossible. Therefore, we have instead provided examples and ideas of programmes that we have experienced to highlight how a university might begin to develop a strategy of engagement. Wideranging reviews of the literature suggest that a model such as we have outlined, starting with younger age groups, involving teachers and parents and building to a pure recruitment drive, may be a logical way to develop or reform recruitment strategies. We have also provided a wealth of research to help those developing programmes to understand career influences and help them synthesise the salient factors so that they can produce a tailored and evidence-based strategy for student recruitment and engagement. However, the authors accept that until such programmes are actually put to practical use their true worth cannot be determined. We strongly encourage programme leaders and their managers to include robust evaluation measures into their work. To this end, the authors themselves are currently undertaking a programme of research to determine the ultimate value of the strategies presented here. Andrew Cridge is a postdoctoral research fellow at the University of Otago, New Zealand. Belinda Cridge is a lecturer at the University of Otago, New
Brown, S., Ortiz-Nuñez, A. & Taylor, K. (2011). What will I be when I grow up? An analysis of childhood expectations and career outcomes. Economics of Education Review, 30(3), 493-506. doi: 10.1016/j.econedurev.2010.12.003. Bush, G. (2006). State of the Union Address. Retrieved from http:// georgewbush-whitehouse.archives.gov/stateoftheunion/2006/. Business Roundtable. (2005). Tapping America’s potential: The education for innovation initiative. Washing D. C.: Business Roundtable. Buzzanell, P. M., Berkelaar, B. L. & Kisselburgh, L. (2011). From the Mouths of Babes: Exploring Families’ Career Socialisation of Young Children in China, Lebanon, Belgium, and the United States. Journal of Family Communication, 11(2), 148-164. doi: 10.1080/15267431.2011.554494. Canterbury, R. M. (2000). Higher Education Marketing: A Challenge. Journal of Marketing for Higher Education, 9(3), 15-24. doi: 10.1300/J050v09n03_02. Catsambis, S. (2001). Expanding knowledge of parental involvement in children’s secondary education: Connections with high school seniors’ academic success. Social Psychology of Education, 5(2), 149-177. Cheng, Y., Payne, J. & Witherspoon, S. (1995). Science and mathematics in full-time education after 16: England and Wales Youth Cohort Study. London: Department for Education and Employment. Cleaves, A. (2005). The formation of science choices in secondary school. International Journal of Science Education, 27(4), 471-486. doi: 10.1080/0950069042000323746. Cohen, P. A. (1981). Student Ratings of Instruction and Student Achievement: A Meta-analysis of Multisection Validity Studies. Review of Educational Research, 51(3), 281-309. doi: 10.3102/00346543051003281. Collins, J. A. & Fraser, B. C. J. M. (2005). Balancing the strengths of systematic and narrative reviews. Human Reproduction Update, 11(2), 103-104. doi: 10.1093/humupd/dmh058. Crawley, F. E. & Black, C. B. (1992). Causal modeling of secondary science students’ intentions to enroll in physics. Journal of Research in Science Teaching, 29(6), 585-599. doi: 10.1002/tea.3660290607.
Zealand.
Cunningham, C. (2000). A framework for addressing Maori knowledge in research, science and technology. Pacific Health Dialogues, 7(1), 62-69.
References
Cuny, J. & Aspray, W. (2002). Recruitment and retention of women graduate students in computer science and engineering: results of a workshop organised by the computing research association. SIGCSE Bull., 34(2), 168-174. doi: 10.1145/543812.543852.
Angulo, F., Pergelova, A. & Rialp, J. (2010). A market segmentation approach for higher education based on rational and emotional factors. Journal of Marketing for Higher Education, 20(1), 1-17. doi: 10.1080/08841241003788029. Aschbacher, P. R., Li, E. & Roth, E. J. (2010). Is science me? High school students’ identities, participation and aspirations in science, engineering, and medicine. Journal of Research in Science Teaching, 47(5), 564-582. doi: 10.1002/ tea.20353.
42
Dawson, E. & Jensen, E. (2011). Towards a contextual turn in visitor studies: evaluating visitor segmentation and identity-related motivations. Visitor Studies, 14(2), 127-140. Davies, M. & Kandel, D. B. (1981). Parental and Peer Influences on Adolescents’ Educational Plans: Some Further Evidence. American Journal of Sociology, 87(2), 363-387.
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Department of Education (Statistics), (2006). Science Highlights 2000: The nation’s report card. NCES 2006-466. Washington D.C.: U. S. Department of Education.
Harrison-Walker, L. J. (2010). Customer prioritization in higher education: targeting ‘right’ students for long-term profitability. Journal of Marketing for Higher Education, 20(2), 191-208. doi: 10.1080/08841241.2010.526355.
Downs, A., Martin, J., Fossum, M., Martinez, S., Solorio, M. & Martinez, H. (2008). Parents Teaching Parents: A Career and College Knowledge Program for Latino Families. Journal of Latinos and Education, 7(3), 227-240. doi: 10.1080/15348430802100295.
Hartung, P. J. (2002). Cultural context in career theory and practice: Role salience and values. The Career Development Quarterly, 51(1), 12-25.
Duncan, S. C. (1993). The role of cognitive appraisal and friendship provisions in adolescents’ affect and motivation toward activity in physical education. Research quarterly for exercise and sport, 64(3), 314-323. Eccles (Parsons), J., Adler, T. F., Futterman, R., Goff, S. B., Kaczala, C. M., Meece, J. L., et al. (1983). Expectancies, values and academic behaviours. In T. Spence (Ed.), Achievement and achievement motivation (pp. 75-146). San Francisco: Freeman. Eccles, J. S. (1999). The Development of Children Ages 6 to 14. The Future of Children, 9(2), 30-44. Eccles, J. (2011). Gendered educational and occupational choices: Applying the Eccles et al. model of achievement-related choices. International Journal of Behavioral Development, 35(3), 195-201. Education Review Office (2012). Science in The New Zealand Curriculum: Years 5 to 8. Retrieved from http://www.ero.govt.nz/National-Reports/Science-in-TheNew-Zealand-Curriculum-Years-5-to-8-May-2012 on 01/09/13. Emmanuelle, V. (2009). Inter-relationships among attachment to mother and father, self-esteem, and career indecision. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 75(2), 91-99. European Commission. (2004). Report by the High Level Group on increasing human resources for science and technology in Europe. Luxemburg: Office for Official Publications of the European Communities. Fadigan, K. A. & Hammrich, P. L. (2004). A longitudinal study of the educational and career trajectories of female participants of an urban informal science education program. Journal of Research in Science Teaching, 41(8), 835-860. Ferre, X., Imbert, R., Palma, E. & Pascual, M. A. (2013, March). Study on the Use of an iPad app for University Student Recruitment. In Proceedings of the 2013 International Conference on Information, Business and Education Technology (ICIBET 2013). Atlantis Press. Fouad, N. A., Smith, P. L. & Zao, K. E. (2002). Across academic domains: Extensions of the social-cognitive career model. Journal of Counseling Psychology, 49(2), 164-171. doi: 10.1037/0022-0167.49.2.164. France, B. & Compton, V. (Eds.) (2012). Bringing communities together: Connecting learners with scientists or technologists. France: Springer. Freeman, K. (1997). Increasing African Americans’ Participation in Higher Education: African American High-School Students’ Perspectives. The Journal of Higher Education, 68(5), 523-550.
Hattie, J. (2004, February). It’s official: Teachers Make a Difference. Educare News,144, 24-31. Hattie, J. (2011). Which strategies best enhance teaching and learning in higher education? In Mashek, D. & Hammer, E. Y. (Eds.). Empirical research in teaching and learning, (130-142). USA: Wiley-Blackwell. Hazari, Z., Sonnert, G., Sadler, P. M. & Shanahan, M.-C. (2010). Connecting high school physics experiences, outcome expectations, physics identity, and physics career choice: A gender study. Journal of Research in Science Teaching, 47(8), 978-1003. doi: 10.1002/tea.20363 Helwig, A. A. (2008). From Childhood to Adulthood: A 15-Year Longitudinal Career Development Study. The Career Development Quarterly, 57(1), 38-50. doi: 10.1002/j.2161-0045.2008.tb00164.x. Higher Education Research Institute. (2010). Degrees of success: Bachelor’s degree completion rates among initial STEM majors. Los Angeles, CA: University of California, Los Angeles. Hill, C., Corbett, C. & St Rose, A. (2010). Why So Few? Women in Science, Technology, Engineering, and Mathematics. 1111 Sixteenth Street NW, Washington, DC 20036: American Association of University Women. Hodkinson, P. & Sparkes, A. C. (1997). Careership: a sociological theory of career decision making. British Journal of Sociology of Education, 18(1), 29-44. doi: 10.1080/0142569970180102. Holland, J. L. (1997). Making vocational choices: A theory of vocational personalities and work environments (3rd ed.). Odessa, FL, US: Psychological Assessment Resources. Jacobs, J. E. & Eccles, J. S. (2000). Parents, task values, and real-life achievement-related choices. In Sansone, C. & Harackiewicz, J. M. (Eds.), Intrinsic and extrinsic motivation: The search for optimal motivation and performance. (405-439). San Diego, CA: Academic Press. Jacobs, J. E., Finken, L. L., Griffin, N. L. & Wright, J. D. (1998). The career plans of science-talented rural adolescent girls. American Educational Research Journal, 35(4), 681-704. Jones, M. G. & Wheatley, J. (1990). Gender differences in teacher-student interactions in science classrooms. Journal of Research in Science Teaching, 27(9), 861-874. doi: 10.1002/tea.3660270906. Kahneman, D. & Tversky, A. (1984). Choices, values, and frames. American Psychologist, 39(4), 341-350. doi: 10.1037/0003-066x.39.4.341. Kelly, A. (1981). Mathematical Ability: Is sex a factor? Science, 212(4491), 118.
Frieze, C. & Blum, L. (2002). Building an effective computer science student organization: the Carnegie Mellon women@SCS action plan. ACM SIGCSE Bull., 34(2), 74-78. doi: 10.1145/543812.543835.
Kim, B. S., Li, L. C. & Liang, T. H. (2002). Effects of Asian American client adherence to Asian cultural values, session goal, and counselor emphasis of client expression on career counseling process. Journal of Counseling Psychology, 49(3), 342.
Frølich, N. & Stensaker, B. (2010) Student recruitment strategies in higher education: promoting excellence and diversity? International Journal of Educational Management, 24(4), 359-370. doi: 10.1108/09513541011045281.
Lemke, J. (2001). Articulating communities: sociocultural perspectives on science education. Journal of Research in Science Teaching, 38, 296-316.
Gale, T., Hattam, R., Parker, S., Comber, B., Bills, D., & Tranter, D. (2010). Interventions early in school as a means to improve higher education outcomes for disadvantaged (particularly low SES) students. Adelaide: National Centre for Student Equity in Higher Education. Goldhaber, D. D. & Brewer, D. J. (1997). Why Don’t Schools and Teachers Seem to Matter? Assessing the Impact of Unobservables on Educational Productivity. The Journal of Human Resources, 32(3), 505-523. Gouthier, D., Manzoli, F. & Ramani, D. (2008). Scientific careers and gender differences. A qualitative study. Journal of Science Communication, 7(1), 1-3. vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Lent, R. W., Brown, S. D. & Hackett, G. (1994). Toward a unifying social cognitive theory of career and academic interest, choice, and performance. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 45(1), 79-122. doi: 10.1006/jvbe.1994.1027. Licata, J. & Frankwick, G. L. (1996). University Marketing: A Professional Service Organization Perspective. Journal of Marketing for Higher Education, 7(2), 1-16. doi: 10.1300/J050v07n02_01. Lindahl, B. (2003, August). Pupils’ responses to school science and technology? A longitudinal study of pathways to upper secondary school. Retrieved from https://www.journals.uio.no/index.php/nordina/article/view/476/526.
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
43
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
Luscombe, J., Lewis, I. & Biggs, H. C. (2013). Essential elements for recruitment and retention: Generation Y. International Journal of Education Management, 55(3), 272-290. doi:10.1108/00400911311309323. Ma, P. W. W. & Yeh, C. J. (2005). Factors influencing the career decision status of Chinese American youths. The Career Development Quarterly, 53(4), 337-347. Maltese, A. V. & Tai, R. H. (2009). Eyeballs in the Fridge: Sources of early interest in science. International Journal of Science Education, 32(5), 669-685. doi: 10.1080/09500690902792385. Maringe, F. (2006). University and course choice: Implications for positioning, recruitment and marketing. International Journal of Educational Management, 20(6), 466-479. Mau, W. C. (2000). Cultural differences in career decision-making styles and self-efficacy. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 57(3), 365-378. Ministry of Science, Research and Technology. (2008). From strength to strength: The government’s agenda for New Zealand science, research and technology. Wellington: Ministry of Science, Research and Technology. Mulvey, P.J. & Nicholson, S. (2012). Physics Bachelor’s Degrees Results from the 2010 Survey of Enrollments and Degrees. College Park, Maryland, USA: American Institute of Physics Statistical Research Center. Munro, M. & Elsom, D. (2000). Choosing Science at 16: The influence of science teachers and career advisors on students’ decisions about science subjects and science and technology careers. Cambridge, UK: Department for Education and Employment. National Academies. (2005). Rising above the gathering storm: Energising and employing America for a brighter economic future. Washington D.C.: National Academies. Niles, S. G. & Hartung, P. J. (2000). Emerging career theories Career counseling of college students: An empirical guide to strategies that work (pp. 23-42). Washington, DC, US: American Psychological Association. Oliver, C. & Kettley, N. (2010). Gatekeepers or facilitators: the influence of teacher habitus on students’ applications to elite universities. British Journal of Sociology of Education, 31(6), 737-753. doi: 10.1080/01425692.2010.515105. Osborne, J. & Dillon, J. (2008). Science education in Europe: Critical reflections. A report to the Nuffield Foundation. London:Nuffield Foundation. Osborne, J., Simon, S. & Collins, S. (2003). Attitudes towards science: A review of the literature and its implications. International Journal of Science Education, 25(9), 1049-1079. doi: 10.1080/0950069032000032199.
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Richmond, G. (1996). University/school partnerships: Bridging the culture gap. Theory Into Practice, 35(3), 214-218. Riise, J. (2008). Bringing science to the public. In D. Cheng et al. (Eds.) Communicating Science in Social Contexts (301-309). Netherlands: Springer. Rockoff, J. E. (2004). The Impact of Individual Teachers on Student Achievement: Evidence from Panel Data. The American Economic Review, 94(2), 247-252. Roksa, J. & Potter, D. (2011). Parenting and Academic Achievement. Sociology of Education, 84(4), 299-321. doi: 10.1177/0038040711417013. Rubie-Davies, C., Hattie, J. & Hamilton, R. (2006). Expecting the best for students: Teacher expectations and academic outcomes. British Journal of Educational Psychology, 76(3), 429-444. doi: 10.1348/000709905x53589. Schuette, C. T., Ponton, M. K. & Charlton, M. L. (2012). Middle School Children’s Career Aspirations: Relationship to Adult Occupations and Gender. The Career Development Quarterly, 60(1), 36-46. doi: 10.1002/j.2161-0045.2012.00004.x. Shrigley, R. L. (1990). Attitude and behavior are correlates. Journal of Research in Science Teaching, 27(2), 97-113. doi: 10.1002/tea.3660270203. Simpson, R. D. & Steve Oliver, J. (1990). A summary of major influences on attitude toward and achievement in science among adolescent students. Science Education, 74(1), 1-18. doi: 10.1002/sce.3730740102. Stake, J. E. & Nickens, S. D. (2005). Adolescent Girls’ and Boys’ Science Peer Relationships and Perceptions of the Possible Self as Scientist. Sex Roles, 52(1), 1-11. doi: 10.1007/s11199-005-1189-4. Super, D. E., Savickas, M. L. & Super, C. M. (1996). The Life-span, life-space approach to careers. In D. Brown, L. Brooks & Associates (Eds.), Career choice and development (4th ed., 121-178). San Francisco: Jossey-Bass. Tai, R. H., Qi Liu, C., Maltese, A. V. & Fan, X. (2006). Planning Early for Careers in Science. Science, 312(5777), 1143-1144. doi: 10.1126/science.1128690. Tanner, K. D., Chatman, L. & Allen, D. (2003). Approaches to biology teaching and learning: Science teaching and learning across the school–university divide – cultivating conversations through scientist–teacher partnerships. Cell Biology Education, 2(4), 195-201. Taurere, M. M. (2010). Advocates for Maori students : the role of careers advisors? (Doctoral dissertation). The University of Auckland, Auckland, New Zealand. Woodrow, D. (1996). Cultural inclinations towards studying mathematics and sciences. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 22(1), 23-38. doi: 10.1080/1369183x.1996.9976520.
Packard, B. W. L. & Nguyen, D. (2003). Science career-related possible selves of adolescent girls: A longitudinal study. Journal of Career Development, 29(4), 251-263. Patrick, H., Ryan, A. M., Alfeld-Liro, C., Fredricks, J. A., Hruda, L. Z. & Eccles, J. S. (1999). Adolescents’ Commitment to Developing Talent: The Role of Peers in Continuing Motivation for Sports and the Arts. Journal of Youth and Adolescence, 28(6), 741-763. doi: 10.1023/a:1021643718575.
44
Evaluating how universities engage school students with science B J Cridge & A G Cridge
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper Michael C Calver Murdoch University
Citation-based metrics are important in determining careers, so it is unsurprising that recent publications advise prospective authors on how to write highly cited papers. While such publications offer excellent advice on structuring and presenting manuscripts, there are significant downsides, including: restrictions in the topics researched, incentives to misconduct and possible detriments to motivation, innovation and collegiality. Guides to writing highly cited papers also assume that all citations are equal, ignoring new directions in bibliometric research identifying ‘quality’ and perfunctory citations. Rather than pursuing citations, with the uncertainty about their significance and the potential negative consequences, authors may fare better by following evidence from several disciplines indicating that persistence, a focused research program, good methodology and publishing in relevant journals are more important in career development and disciplinary influence than the odd star paper. Research administrators could encourage such steps by considering innovative new multivariate assessments of research productivity, including assessing social impact. Keywords: citation, quality citation, motivation, misconduct, innovation, highly cited
Introduction
and clarity of style, encouraging people to aim consciously to write highly cited papers is concerning
Increasingly, researchers find their track records under
for five main reasons: (i) it narrows the scope of research
scrutiny as supervisors and funding agencies seek the
undertaken or published; (ii) the focus on reward
most successful groups to fund, or individuals to reward
may reduce intrinsic motivation, innovation and true
with appointments, promotion, tenure or prizes (Corsi,
collaboration but encourage mistakes and misconduct;
D’Ippoliti & Lucidi, 2010; Oswald, 2010; Teixeira et al.,
(iii) despite substantial research, the significance of
2013). Consulting the citation records in major databases
citations remains controversial; (iv) empirical evidence
is a more rapid and cheaper way to make such assessments
from several disciplines indicates that persistence,
than through peer review (Hodge & Lacasse, 2011; Buela-
research
Casal & Zych, 2012), so citation profiles are increasingly
publishing in germane journals are most important in
important in determining careers (Calver, 2013; Calver et
developing a career and influencing a discipline, not the
al., 2013a; van Wesel, Wyaat & ten Haaf, 2014).
occasional highly cited paper; and (v) the convenience of
specialisation,
good
methodology
and
One must publish to be cited, so it is unsurprising that
citation counting may impede development or adoption
the valuable guides to scientific writing and publishing
of innovative new multivariate assessments of research
from experienced authors, editors or teachers (e.g.
productivity, including evaluation of wider social impact.
Glasman-Deal, 2010; Cargill & O’Connor, 2013;Tress,Tress & Saunders, 2014) have been joined by a new category
Narrowing research scope
of advice – how to write a highly cited paper (Pyke 2013; 2014).While both traditional and new guides share
The topic and the type of study are important predictors
concerns for excellent presentation, sound scholarship
of citation potential, so choosing a topic is a key part of
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper Michael C Calver
45
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
advice on writing highly cited papers (Pyke, 2013; 2014).
between external rewards and intrinsic motivation accept
Taxonomists, for example, have vented their frustration
that rewards depress intrinsic motivation when the task is
regarding belittling of their important work on the basis
interesting, the possibility of reward is known in advance
of the low citations it attracts (Valdecasas, Castroviejo
and the likelihood of reward is ambiguously connected
& Marcus, 2000; Valdecasas, 2014). Their specialised
to performance (Cameron, Banko & Pierce, 2001). This
subject matter is of immediate interest to just a few
matches aiming for a highly cited paper because the
experts (Ebach, Valdecasas & Wheeler, 2011), although
research is interesting, authors know that citations may
it subsequently underpins (without citation) diverse
follow, but even good work may only receive modest
areas of biological inquiry (MacRoberts & MacRoberts,
citations (Valdecasas et al., 2000; Shewan & Coats, 2006;
2010). The same is true of many areas in mathematics
Jones, 2007).
(Adler, Ewing & Taylor, 2008), some medical specialities
Critiques of using rewards as motivation also note that
(van Eck et al., 2013) and numerous applied disciplines
while they may increase basic productivity, innovation
where the significance of work comes not from academic
may decline (but see Curran & Walsworth, 2014 for
citations but from influence on practitioners (Shewan &
suggestions that the type of reward may be important in
Coats, 2006; Jones, 2007; Calver, Lilith & Dickman, 2013b).
determining whether or not it encourages innovation).
In contrast, hot topics and reviews are more likely to
It may be better to use tried and true methods in case
attract citations (Davis et al., 2008; Davis, 2009; Teixeira
the new approach fails, or people may simply be so
et al., 2013), as are positive studies (those supporting the
busy chasing the reward that they do not consider an
hypothesis tested) (Falagas & Alexiou, 2008; Song et al.,
alternative approach (Ariely et al., 2009;Webb,Williamson
2010; Jannot et al., 2013). Keeping good company may be
& Zhang, 2013). Charlton (2008) speculated that science
important too: papers with many authors or at least one
in the UK is undergoing just such a process, with a
highly cited author attract more citations, which is why it
preference for more productive ‘normal science’ over
is necessary to control for the number of authors in some
less productive but potentially more ground-breaking
bibliometric studies (Calver & Bradley, 2010).
‘revolutionary science.’ In academia, the problem may be
Thus authors hungry for citations will neglect some
compounded by a preference for the tried and true at
fields or topics, regardless of their potential merit, in
the grant application stage (Martin, 2000) or in editorial
favour of the fashionable or the review, preferably written
process with publications (Horrobin, 1990). Surprisingly,
with many influential colleagues. They certainly won’t
mistakes may actually increase when the focus is on the
tackle ‘... areas of public interest where little research is
outcome rather than the process, a phenomenon well
being done’ (Martin, 2012, p. 168) and will probably have
documented in declines in athletic performance under
less time for applied research or engaging the public
pressure (DeCaro et al., 2011).
(B. Martin, 2011). A narrowing of research diversity is as
True collaboration may suffer too, because genuine
valuable to scholarship as atherosclerosis is to the cardiac
collaborative relationships may be replaced by a
patient, yet one follows citation hunger as surely as the
‘contrived collegiality’ in which there is uncritical
other follows a fatty diet.
acceptance of striving for an external goal or meeting an external agenda (Boocock,2011).For example,in 2007 the
Focus on reward
UK began planning its first iteration of the REF (Research Evaluation Framework) for evaluating research in higher
Intrinsic motivation, or the desire to complete a task
education, with a strong emphasis on citations. Several
for personal satisfaction rather than external reward
senior academics predicted that authorship practices
(Cerasoli, Nicklin & Ford, 2014), may be at risk when
would shift to the disadvantage of junior researchers.
the focus is on an external outcome or reward, such as
Specifically, junior researchers would be excluded from
high citations, rather than the process of conceiving,
secondary authorship on group publications so that
implementing and communicating a good study. Some
they could later cite those papers without a penalty for
empirical studies and meta-analyses of relationships
self-citation for the senior colleagues on the original
between external rewards and intrinsic motivation find
papers. On the other hand, senior researchers were
a reduction in intrinsic motivation when rewards are
predicted to form ‘citation clubs’, in which they agreed
offered (e.g. Ryan & Deci, 1996; Deci & Ryan, 2013; Green,
to cite each other’s papers for mutual benefit (Corbyn,
2014). Others do not (e.g. Eisenberger & Cameron, 1996;
2008). Citation clubs are already documented at the
Reiss, 2005). Nevertheless, even critics of negative links
journal, if not the individual, level (van Noorden, 2013).
46
Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper Michael C Calver
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
These examples fulfil predictions that obsession with
(Zhu et al., 2014). Bergsma et al. (2014, p. 35) also claim
numerical assessments rewards aggressive, acquisitive
significant improvement in assessing an author’s influence
and exploitative behaviour (Lawrence, 2002).
by replacing citations with multivariate data including
Finally, a conviction that success is ‘deserved’ may
‘novel social, linguistic, psychological, and bibliometric
tempt authors into misconduct to gain the reward, just
features.’ Applying methods such as these may reduce the
as an athlete may rationalise doping (Martinson,Anderson
value of some highly cited works such as reviews relative
& De Vries, 2005; Fanelli, 2009; Deci & Ryan, 2013).
to empirical papers making original contributions. They
Thus ‘Excessive focus on building publication records
would also threaten questionable practices such as the
may lead to over-bias towards choosing high-impact
boosting of citations by commissioning opinion pieces
journals for publication, violation of publication ethics,
that offer extensive opportunities for the self-citation of
and unbalanced development of writing skills’ (Cheung,
authors and journals (Heneberg, 2014).
2008, p. 41). Buela-Casal (2014) argues that excessive
Overall, striving for a highly cited paper is not necessarily
concern with research status and associated marketing
the same as aiming to produce influential work. To use
meet the criteria of a psychological disorder, manifesting
an analogy from novelists, Harold Robbins may have sold
in behaviour such as fraudulent misrepresentation of
more copies than William Faulkner or Ernest Hemingway,
research data or bibliometric profiles, personal belief in
but Faulkner and Hemingway have surely had a greater
such misrepresentations, and an obsession with self-image.
influence on modern literature.
What does a citation mean?
Lessons from successful researchers
Critiques
highlight
Commentaries by authors on their highly cited papers
numerous biases and unchecked assumptions, some of
of
simplistic
citation
analyses
nominated interest from the scientific and lay communities,
which remain unaddressed (Appendix 1). Furthermore,
novelty, utility to broad audiences and significance in
in some fields citations correlate significantly with peer
addressing an important or fundamental problem as key
assessments of impact or influence such as prizes and
reasons for the high citations. The categories were not
awards, but in others they do not (Bergsma, Mandryk &
mutually exclusive, so authors often referred to more than
McCalla, 2014). This calls into question their validity as
one (Small, 2004).
measures of quality.
However, significant influence on a discipline is more
More recently, bibliometricians note that not all citations
likely to follow from consistent performance over a
are equal, even leading to the farcical situation where a
career, not one star paper. In ecology, such influence
non-existent paper is cited frequently because authors
correlates strongly with research specialisation, a
have copied a referencing error (Dubin, 2004). Not so
focused body of work (not necessarily on a fashionable
farcical are examples where misrepresentation of what
topic) and publication of good papers in germane (not
was actually written or echoing a fallacy by not checking
necessarily highly ranked) journals (Parker, Allesina
the original promulgates misinformation (Wetterer,
& Lortie, 2013). In this context, it is worth noting that
2006; Wright & Armstrong, 2008). These problems may
the citation gap between elite journals and the others
be common. In the field of marine biology one in four
is declining (Acharya et al., 2014). Padial et al. (2010)
citations was found to be ambiguous in relation to the
further stressed the value of innovation in ecological
statement it was supposed to support, offered no support
papers. Hermanowicz (2006), in a survey of physicists,
at all, or was empty (a reference to a secondary source)
found that the top-ranked quality for success was
(Todd et al., 2010).
persistence in the face of difficulty or publication
A recent review claims that between 40 and 80 per cent
rejection. This is echoed in the case of ecology by
of citations are inessential or perfunctory. The authors
Cassey and Blackburn (2003, p. 375), who found that
then suggest a framework for identifying influential
‘publication success and manuscript rejection are not
citations on the basis of repeated use in one paper,
strangers’, and in psychology by Douglas (1992), who
similarities between the citation title and the title or sub-
claimed to have received up to three rejections for every
sections of the citing paper, the context of the citation
highly cited paper he published. To all of these can be
in the paper (noting any descriptors such as ‘important’,
added the blessings of Lady Luck, because of ‘... the key
‘baseline’, ‘key’ etc. or whether the citation appears alone
role that error, chance or accident can sometimes play in
or in a series), and the location of the citation in the paper
scientific endeavour’ (Campanario, 1996, p. 20).
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper Michael C Calver
47
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
Innovations in research assessment
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
noted cynically: ‘In any event, if you were to set out in cold blood to write a highly cited article, your best bet
Citation counting for research assessment is attractive to
would be to devise or revise a paper-and-pencil test of
research administrators because it is speedy and offers the
personality or motivation, improve on a commonly used
illusion of objective numbers (Adler et al., 2008), despite
method, coin a snappy new word or phrase, or think of
the problems reported (Appendix 1). This may restrain
a new way to apply statistics.’ With no intent at cynicism,
support for the more challenging approach of allowing
van Wesel et al. (2014, p. 1612) advise:‘If scholars or their
individuals or organisations undergoing evaluation to
institutions want to contribute to scientific literature, and
demonstrate the impact of their work beyond bibliometric
to be seen to contribute, and if they wish promote (sic)
indicators. Possibilities might be changes in professional
their individual and collective reputations in rankings and
or government practice as a result of research (Witten &
evaluations, they need to be aware of how the invisible
Hammond, 2010), publishing in local languages rather than
hand in science works, and how it can be influenced.
English to reach regional communities or practitioners
Form and style also influence how well individual scholars
(Adler & Harzing, 2009), or online readership/download
and their institutions fare in the global competition that
statistics where readership may be more important than
scientific publication has become.’ Such an outcome-driven approach reduces research
citations (Bollen et al., 2009). Several major initiatives are attempting just such broad
diversity,encourages selfish behaviour or even misconduct,
assessments. For example, STAR METRICS (Science and
conflicts with empirical evidence about what practices
Technology for America’s Reinvestment: measuring the
are most likely to lead to a strong and lasting influence
effects of research on innovation, competitiveness, and
and might hamper the uptake of innovative new methods
science) focuses on a wide range of results and impacts
of assessing the significance of research, especially
from federally-funded US researchers (Largent & Lane,
efforts to assess social impact. It leads to complaints that
2012). In Brazil, the Lattes Platform takes a multivariate
‘... dodgy evaluation criteria such as impact factors and
statistical approach to evaluate the broad impact of
citations are dominating minds, distorting behaviour and
Brazilian researchers (Araújo et al., 2014). In Europe, the
determining careers’ (Lawrence, 2007, p. R583) and that
Social Impact Assessment Methods through Productive
research rankings based partly on citations are ‘... causing
Interactions (SIAMPI) project is a broad-based initiative
biomedical scientists to focus more on their careers and
involving contributors from The Netherlands, Spain, France
less on understanding nature and disease’ (Lawrence 2002,
and the UK. Its goals include assessing the social impact
p. 835). Valuable points about style and crafting a paper
of research and providing granting bodies with diverse
can be taken from advice on writing highly cited work
data on the effectiveness of their activities (Molas-Gallart
(Pyke, 2013; 2014; van Wesel et al. 2014), but there are
& Tang, 2011; Spaapen & van Drooge, 2011). Innovative
dangers in moving beyond that to selection of research
online resources are also growing. Examples include:
topics on the basis of citation potential. Surely, one should
Metrics from Scholarly Usage of Resources (MESUR),
advise authors to aspire to influencing their discipline
Standardised
Initiative
through quality work rather than writing a highly cited
(SERU)
paper – with all the uncertainty about what a highly cited
Usage
(SUSHI), Shared
Statistics
E-Resource
Harvesting Understanding
and Counting Online Usage of NeTworked Electronic
paper actually means.
Resources (COUNTER) (Pesch, 2011). These suggestions
Research administrators might also consider the
are difficult and possibly expensive (B R Martin, 2011),
advantages of more broad-based methods of research
but the alternative is a simplistic, restricted assessment of
assessment, heeding the call of ‘The San Francisco
the value of research to the community (Lane, 2010; Lane
Declaration on Research Assessment (DORA) (http://
& Bertuzzi, 2011).
am.ascb.org/dora/) to ‘... consider the value and impact of all research outputs (including datasets and software)
Assessment
in addition to research publications, and consider a broad range of impact measures including qualitative indicators
While some assert that ‘Writing highly cited articles is
of research impact, such as influence on policy and
an important goal for scholars’ (van Wesel et al., 2014,
practice.’ Such a focus on the broad impacts of research
p. 1602), aiming for a highly cited paper concentrates
would assist authors in shifting their emphasis from the
on an outcome, not the process of doing good research
‘hot topics’ that feed citation hunger to a wider range of
and disseminating the results. As Douglas (1992, p. 405)
problems of social, political and environmental relevance.
48
Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper Michael C Calver
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Acknowledgements
individual research records of ecologists and conservation biologists. Pacific Conservation Biology, 19, 320-330.
I thank Joe Fontaine, Harry Recher and Denis Saunders
Calver, M.C., Lilith, M. & Dickman, C.R. (2013b). A ‘perverse incentive’ from bibliometrics: could National Research Assessment Exercises (NRAEs) restrict literature availability for nature conservation? Scientometrics, 95, 243-255.
for comments. However, they may not share all opinions expressed.
Cameron, J., Banko, K.M. & Pierce, W.D. (2001). Pervasive negative effects of rewards on intrinsic motivation: The myth continues. Behavior Analyst 24, 1-44.
Michael Calver spends much of his productive time in the
Campanario, J.M. (1996). Using citation classics to study the incidence of serendipity in scientific discovery. Scientometrics, 37, 3-24.
School of Veterinary and Life Sciences, Murdoch University, WA.
References Acharya, A., Verstak, A., Suzuki, H., Henderson, S., Iakhiaev, M., Lin, C.C.Y. & Shetty, N. (2014). Rise of the rest: the growing impact of non-elite journals. arXiv:1410.2217v1 [cs.DL] 8 Oct 2014. Adler, N.J., & Harzing, A.-W. (2009). When knowledge wins: transcending the sense and nonsense of academic rankings. Academy of Management Learning and Education 8, 72-95. Adler, R., Ewing, J. & Taylor, P. (2008). Citation Statistics: A Report From The International Mathematical Union (IMU) In Cooperation With The International Council Of Industrial And Applied Mathematics (ICIAM) And The Institute Of Mathematical Statistics (IMS). Retrieved from http://www. mathunion.org/fileadmin/IMU/Report/CitationStatistics.pdf.
Cargill M. & O’Connor, P. 2013. Writing Scientific Research Articles: Strategy And Steps. (2nd ed.). Wiley-Blackwell. Cassey, P. & Blackburn, T.M. (2003). Publication rejection among ecologists. Trends in Ecology and Evolution, 18, 375-376. Cerasoli, C.P., Nicklin, J.M. & Ford, M.T. (2014). Intrinsic motivation and extrinsic incentives jointly predict performance: A 40-year meta-analysis. Psychological Bulletin, 140, 980-1008. Charlton, B.G. (2008). ‘Down-shifting among top UK scientists? – The decline of ‘revolutionary science’ and the rise of ‘normal science’ in the UK compared with the USA. Medical Hypotheses, 70, 465-472. Cheung, W.W.L. (2008). The economics of post-doc publishing. Ethics in Science and Environmental Politics, 8, 41-44.
Aksnes, D.W. (2003). A macro study of self-citation. Scientometrics 56, 235-246.
Colledge, L., de Moya-Anegón, F., Guerrero-Bote, V.P., López-Illescas, C., El Aisati, M. & Moed, H.F. (2010). SJR and SNIP: two new journal metrics in Elsevier’s Scopus. Serials 23, 215-221.
Amancio, D.R., Nunes, M.G.V., Oliveira Jr., O.N. & da Costa, L.F. (2012). Using complex networks concepts to assess approaches for citations in scientific papers. Scientometrics 91, 827-842.
Corbyn, Z. (2008). Researchers may play dirty to beat REF. Times Higher Education 7 February 2008. Retrieved from: http://www.timeshighereducation. co.uk/news/researchers-may-play-dirty-to-beat-ref/400516.article.
Araújo, E.B., Moreira, A.A., Furtado, V., Pequeno, T.H.C. & Andrade Jr., J.S. (2014). Collaboration networks from a large CV database: Dynamics, topology and bonus impact. PLoS ONE 9(3): e90537. doi:10.1371/journal.pone.0090537.
Corsi, M., D’Ippoliti, C. & Lucidi, F. (2010). Pluralism at risk? Heterodox economic approaches and the evaluation of economic research in Italy. American Journal of Economics and Sociology, 69, 1495-1529.
Ariely, D., Gneezy, U., Loewenstein, G. & Mazar, N. (2009). Large stakes and big mistakes. Review of Economic Studies, 76, 451-469.
Curran, B. & Walsworth, S. (2014). Can you pay employees to innovate? Evidence from the Canadian private sector. Human Resource Management Journal, 24, 290-306.
Bergsma, S., Mandryk, R.L. & McCalla, G. (2014). Learning To Measure Influence In A Scientific Social Network. In M. Sokolova & P. van Beek (eds). Advances in Artificial Intelligence. 27th Canadian Conference on Artificial Intelligence, Canadian AI 2014, Montréal, QC, Canada, May 6-9, 2014. Proceedings (35-46). Dordrecht: Springer. Bollen, J., van de Sompel, H., Hagberg, A. & Chute. R. (2009). A principal component analysis of 39 scientific impact measures. PLoS ONE 4(6), e6022, doi:10.1371/journal.pone.0006022. Boocock, A. (2011). Quality self assessment: A process of course team development or contrived collegiality and impression management? Research in Post-Compulsory Education, 16, 413-433. Buela-Casal, G. (2014) Pathological publishing: A new psychological disorder with legal consequences? The European Journal of Psychology Applied to Legal Context, 6, 91-97 Buela-Casal, G. & Zych, I. (2012). What do the scientists think about the impact factor? Scientometrics, 92, 281-292. Calver, M. C. (2013). RAM the PI-BETA, C3PO – what the H-STAR happened to my promotion application? Or: The pros and cons of bibliometric evaluations. In D. Lunney, P. Hutchins & H. F. Recher (eds). Grumpy Scientists: The Ecological Conscience of a Nation. (106–121). Mosman, New South Wales’ Royal Zoological Society of New South Wales.
Davis, P.M. (2009). Author-choice open-access publishing in the biological and medical literature: a citation analysis. Journal of the American Society for Information Science and Technology, 60, 3–8. Davis, P.M., B.V. Lewenstein, D.H. Simon, J.G. Booth & Connolly, M.J.L. (2008). Open access publishing, article downloads, and citations: randomised controlled trial. BMJ, 337, 343–345. DeCaro, M.S., Thomas, R.D., Albert, N.B. & Beilock, S.L. (2011). Choking under pressure: Multiple routes to skill failure. Journal of Experimental Psychology: General, 140, 390-406. Deci, E.L. & Ryan, R.M. (2013). The ombudsman: Do CEOs’ aspirations for wealth harm stockholders? Interfaces, 43, 593-595. Douglas, R.J. (1992). How to write a highly cited article without even trying. Psychological Bulletin, 112, 405-408. Dubin, D. (2004). The most influential paper Gerard Salton never wrote. Library Trends, 52, 748-764. Ebach, M.C., Valdecasas, A.G. & Wheeler, Q.D. (2011). Impediments to taxonomy and users of taxonomy: Accessibility and impact evaluation. Cladistics, 27, 550-557. Eisenberger, R. & Cameron, J. (1996). Detrimental effects of reward: Reality or myth? American Psychologist, 51, 1153-1166.
Calver, M.C. & Bradley, J.S. (2010). Patterns of citations in open access and non-open access conservation biology journal papers and book chapters. Conservation Biology, 24, 872-880.
Falagas, M.E. & Alexiou, V.G. (2008). The top-ten in journal impact factor manipulation. Archivum Immunologiae et Therapiae Experimentalis, 56, 223-226.
Calver, M.C., Beatty, S.J., Bryant, K.A., Dickman, C.R., Ebner, B.C. & Morgan, D.L. (2013a). Users beware: implications of database errors when assessing the
Fanelli, D. (2009). How many scientists fabricate and falsify research? A systematic review and meta-analysis of survey data. PLoS ONE, 4(5).
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper Michael C Calver
49
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
Glasman-Deal, H. (2010). Science Research Writing For Non-Native Speakers Of English. London: Imperial College Press. Green, E.P. (2014). Payment systems in the healthcare industry: An experimental study of physician incentives. Journal of Economic Behavior and Organisation, 106, 367-378. Harnad, S., Brody, T. Vallières, F., Carr, L., S., Hitchcock, S., Gingras, Y., Oppenheim, C., Hajem, C. & Hilf, E.R. (2004). The access/impact problem and the green and gold roads to open access. Serials Review 30, 310–314.
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
Molas-Gallart, J. and Tang, P. (2011). Tracing ‘productive interactions’ to identify social impacts: an example from the social sciences. Research Evaluation, 20, 219-226. Opthof, T. (2011). Differences in citation frequency of clinical and basic science papers in cardiovascular research. Medical and Biological Engineering and Computing 49, 613-621. Oswald, A.J. (2010). A suggested method for the measurement of world-leading research (illustrated with data on economics). Scientometrics, 84, 99-113.
Heneberg, P. (2014). Parallel worlds of citable documents and others: inflated commissioned opinion articles enhance scientometric indicators. Journal of the Association for Information Science and Technology, 65, 635-643.
Padial, A.A., Nabout, J.C., Siqueira, T., Bini, L. M. & Diniz-Filho, J.A.F. (2010). Weak evidence for determinants of citation frequency in ecological articles. Scientometrics, 85, 1-12.
Hermanowicz, J.C. (2006). What does it take to be successful? Science Technology and Human Values, 31, 135-152.
Parker, J.N., Allesina, S. & Lortie, C.J. (2013). Characterising a scientific elite (B): Publication and citation patterns of the most highly cited scientists in environmental science and ecology. Scientometrics, 94, 469-480.
Hodge, D. R. & Lacasse, J. R. (2011). Ranking disciplinary journals with the Google Scholar h-index: A new tool for constructing cases for tenure, promotion, and other professional decisions. Journal of Social Work Education, 47, 579-596. Horrobin, D. F. (1990). The philosophical basis of peer review and the suppression of innovation. Journal of the American Medical Association, 263, 1438-1441. Jannot, A. S., Agoritsas, T., Gayet-Ageron, A. & Perneger, T. V. (2013). Citation bias favoring statistically significant studies was present in medical research. Journal of Clinical Epidemiology, 66, 296-301. Jacsó, P. (2008). Testing the calculation of a realistic h-index in Google Scholar, Scopus, and Web of Science for F. W. Lancaster. Library Trends 56, 784-815. Jones, A. W. (2007). The distribution of forensic journals, reflections on authorship practices, peer-review and role of the impact factor. Forensic Science International, 165, 115-128. Lane, J. (2010). Let’s make science metrics more scientific. Nature 464, 488-489. Lane, J. & Bertuzzi, S. (2011). Measuring the results of science investments. Science, 331, 678-680. Largent, M.A. & Lane, J.I., (2012). Star Metrics and the science of science policy. Review of Policy Research, 29, 431-438. Lawrence, P. A. (2002). Rank injustice: the misallocation of credit is endemic in science. Nature, 415, 835-836. Lawrence, P. A. (2007). The mismeasurement of science. Current Biology, 17(15), R583-R585. Leydesdorff, L. (2007). Caveats for the use of citation indicators in research and journal evaluations. Journal of the American Society for Information Science and Technology 59, 278-287. MacRoberts, M.H. & MacRoberts, B.R. (1996). Problems of citation analysis. Scientometrics 36, 435-444. MacRoberts, M. H. & MacRoberts, B. R. (2010). Problems of citation analysis: A study of uncited and seldom-cited influences. Journal of the American Society for Information Science and Technology, 61, 1-12. Martin, B. (2000). Research grants: problems and options. Australian Universities’ Review, 43, 17-22. Martin, B. (2011). ERA: adverse consequences. Australian Universities’ Review 53, 99-102. Martin, B., 2012. Breaking the siege: guidelines for struggle in science. In P. Banks, D. Lunney & C. Dickman (eds.). Science Under Siege: Zoology Under Threat. (164-170). Mosman, New South Wales: Royal Zoological Society of NSW. Martin, B.R. (2011). The research excellence framework and the ‘impact agenda’. Are we creating a Frankenstein monster? Research Evaluation, 20, 247-254. Martinson, B.C., Anderson, M.S. & De Vries, R. (2005). Scientists behaving badly. Nature, 435(7043), 737-738.
50
Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper Michael C Calver
W
Pesch, O. (2011). E-Resource standards you should know about. Serials Librarian, 61, 215-230. Pyke, G.H. (2013). Struggling scientists: Please cite our papers! Current Science, 105, 1061-1066. Pyke, G.H. (2014). Achieving research excellence and citation success: What’s the point and how do you do it? BioScience, 64, 90-91. Reiss, S. (2005). Extrinsic and intrinsic motivation at 30: Unresolved scientific issues. Behavior Analyst, 28, 1-14. Ryan, R.M. & Deci, E.L. (1996). When paradigms clash: Comments on Cameron and Pierce’s claim that rewards do not undermine intrinsic motivation. Review of Educational Research, 66, 33-38. Shewan, L.G. & Coats, A.J.S. (2006). The research quality framework and its implications for health and medical research: time to take stock? Medical Journal of Australia, 184, 463-466. Small, H. (2004). Why authors think their papers are highly cited. Scientometrics, 60, 305-316. Smolinsky, L. and Lercher, A. (2012). Citation rates in mathematics: a study of variation by subdiscipline. Scientometrics 91, 911-924. Song, F., Parekh, S., Hooper, L., Loke, Y.K., Ryder, J., Sutton, A.J., Hing, C., Kwok, C.S., Pang, C. and Harvey, I. (2010). Dissemination and publication of research findings: An updated review of related biases. Health Technology Assessment, 14, 1-220. Spaapen, J. and van Drooge, L. (2011). Productive interactions as a tool for social impact assessment of research. Research Evaluation, 20, 211-218. Teixeira, M.C., Thomaz, S.M., Michelan, T.S., Mormul, R.P., Meurer, T., Fasolli, J. V.B., & Silveira, M.J. (2013). Incorrect citations give unfair credit to review authors in ecology journals. PLoS ONE, 8(12), e81871. Todd, P. A., Guest, J. R., Lu, J., & Chou, L. M. (2010). One in four citations in marine biology papers is inappropriate. Marine Ecology Progress Series, 408, 299-303. Tress, G., Tress, B. & Saunders, D.A. (2014). How to write a paper for successful publication in an international peer-reviewed journal. Pacific Conservation Biology, 20, 17-24. Valdecasas, A.G. (2014). A reply to Páll-Gergely’s suggestions to improve the taxonomy index (t-index) introduced by Valdecasas (2011). Zootaxa, 3784, 99-100. Valdecasas, A.G., Castroviejo, S. & Marcus, L.F. (2000). Reliance on the citation index undermines the study of biodiversity. Nature, 403(6771), 698. van Eck, N.J., Waltman, L., van Raan, A.F.J., Klautz, R.J.M. & Peul, W.C. (2013). Citation analysis may severely underestimate the impact of clinical research as compared to basic research. PLoS ONE, 8(4), e62395. van Noorden, R. (2013), Brazilian citation scheme outed. Nature, 500, 510-511. van Wesel, M., Wyatt, S. & ten Haaf, J. (2014). What a difference a colon makes: How superficial factors influence subsequent citation. Scientometrics, 98, 1601-1615. vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Webb, R.A., Williamson, M. G. & Zhang, Y. (2013). Productivity-target difficulty, target-based pay, and outside-the-box thinking. Accounting Review, 88, 1433-1457.
Wright, M. & Armstrong, J.S. (2008). The ombudsman: verification of citations: Fawlty towers of knowledge? Interfaces, 38, 125-139.
Wetterer, J.K. (2006). Quotation error, citation copying, and ant extinctions in Madeira. Scientometrics, 67, 351-372.
Yu, T., Yu, G. & Wang, M. Y. (2014). Classification method for detecting coercive self-citation in journals. Journal of Informetrics 8, 123-135.
White, H. D. (2001). Author-centered bibliometrics through cameos: Characteriszations automatically made and edited online. Scientometrics 51, 607-637.
Zhu, X., Turney, D., Lemire, D., & Vellino, A. (2014) Measuring academic influence: not all citations are equal. Journal of the Association for Information Science and Technology. DOI: 10.1002/asi.23179.
Witten, K., & Hammond, K. (2010). What becomes of social science knowledge: New Zealand researchers’ experiences of knowledge transfer modes and audiences. Kotuitui, 5, 3-12.
Appendix 1. Criticisms of citation analysis taken from MacRoberts and MacRoberts (1996), together with responses in bibliometric research. Criticism
Response
Authors do not cite all their influences
The criticism that authors cite only a fraction of their influences in their papers remains unanswered, while the range of reasons other than influence for choosing a citation is growing. These include, amongst others, availability (Harnad et al., 2004), personal contacts (White, 2001), and a preference for secondary sources (MacRoberts and MacRoberts, 1996).
Citations are biased
It is acknowledged that, for a range of reasons, authors cite selectively, introducing bias (Song et al., 2010). The possibility of replacing citations selected by authors with others based on electronic assessment of publication similarity (‘virtual scientometry’) is possible but challenging (Amancio et al., 2012).
Secondary sources are preferred
Reviews attract disproportionately high citations (Davis et al., 2008; Davis, 2009, Teixeira et al., 2013), so the reviewer takes credit really due to the authors of the primary papers. The trend for reviews to receive disproportionately more citations is so well established that it is controlled in citation-based studies (e.g. Calver and Bradley 2010).
Informal influences are uncited
Informal influences may be noted in acknowledgements or ‘personal communications’ but not a full citation, which means that they earn no credit.
Citer motivation is unknown
It is recognised that citation is not simply an acknowledgement of credit – many factors influence the choice of citations in a paper. Journal restrictions on the number of citations allowed in a paper is one good example! Another is the pressure editors may place on authors to cite papers from particular journals (Yu et al., 2014).
Citation rates vary between disciplines
There has been much work on addressing this, particularly in relation to journals, through indices such as SJR1 and SNIP2. Nevertheless, fine-scale differences in citations can exist between sub-fields (e.g. the higher citations for basic medical research as opposed to clinical medical research – Opthof, 2011; van Eck et al., 2013, or variations in citation rates across subdisciplines in mathematics – Smolinsky and Lercher, 2012).
Self-citation
This is recognised as excessive (Aksnes, 2003), with options to exclude it provided in some databases.
Audiences vary between disciplines, but are generally unknown
There has been much work on addressing this, particularly in relation to journals, through indices such as SJR1 and SNIP2.
Some sources are traditionally not cited
It is acknowledged that some types of information are traditionally uncited (for example, floras) (MacRoberts and MacRoberts, 2010).
Ignorance of the literature
It is acknowledged that the literature in many fields is so vast that an exhaustive review cannot be undertaken, so relevant papers may be missed from ignorance.
Data are biased
Bibliometricians acknowledge that databases are selective, so citation performance may vary depending on the one used (Jacsó, 2008).
Databases have technical problems
Despite the best efforts, there are errors in databases (Leydesdorff, 2007). Bibliometricians offer advice on tracking down orphan references (references with no master records in a database) and stray references (that cannot be linked to the master record in the database because of errors by the citing authors), but such errors may exert an unknown influence on citation analyses (Jacsó, 2008).
1 SCImago Journal Rank (see Colledge et al. 2010 for further explanation) 2 Source Normalised Impact per Paper (see Colledge et al. 2010 for further explanation) vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper Michael C Calver
51
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Students from Australian universities studying abroad A demographic profile Steve Nerlich Australian National University
Australia is one of many countries to encourage its students to study abroad and hence develop a global perspective. Traditionally, students who have pursued this option represented a relatively privileged and demographically narrow group. More recently, governments and other agencies have been offering funding support with the aim of ‘democratising’ study abroad so that it is more accessible to all students. To help inform the ‘democratisation’ discussion, this paper presents an analysis of the demographic profile of students from Australian universities who currently study abroad, examining changing trends over time and identifying demographic groups that may be underrepresented in the current Australian study abroad population. Keywords: study abroad, student mobility, New Colombo Plan
Introduction: Defining and quantifying study abroad
different activity from other forms of outward student mobility, which involve study towards a full qualification that is granted by a foreign host institution.
Study abroad encompasses activities through which
Study abroad data can be readily collected by
students receive academic credit from their home
institutions that send their own enrolled students
education institution for study undertaken in another
overseas. However, counting international students who
country. It includes undergraduate and postgraduate
have enrolled to complete a full award course in other
tuition, supervised research and curriculum-related work
countries generally requires those other countries to
experience, such as internships. It also includes study
report data on the nationality of incoming students,
exchange programmes between domestic and foreign
perhaps to a global database such as the one hosted by
institutions. A common feature of study abroad is that it is
the United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural
not for the purpose of gaining an award (i.e. a degree or
Organisation (UNESCO) Institute of Statistics (UIS, 2014).
qualification) from a foreign host institution, but instead
A substantial quantitative difference between study
involves students undertaking discrete units of study,
abroad and award (or full-degree) mobility is readily
generally for the purpose of gaining academic credit that
apparent from data on United States of America (US)
will be recognised by the award-granting institution they
students studying outside the US.The annual report Open
are enrolled in, in their home country. This is a distinctly
Doors by the Institute of International Education (IIE)
52
Students from Australian universities studying abroad Steve Nerlich
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
identified 273,996 US students studying abroad in 2010-
Otero, Huisman, Beerkens, de Wit & Vujic (2013), while
11 (Farrugia, Bhandari & Chow, 2012). The IIE, which
acknowledging limited data sources, indicated that Europe
administers the annual Open Doors survey, also conducted
had not yet achieved a target of 10 per cent of European
a parallel survey in foreign host countries to count the
higher education students being mobile during the course
number of US students studying full-degree courses. That
of their degree, with only 4 per cent of students drawing
survey identified 46,635 US students studying full degrees
upon Erasmus funding for the purpose of studying abroad.
in other countries in 201011 (Belyavina & Bhandari,
... while many students in the first year of their study programme expressed enthusiasm to study abroad, this was often not realised over the course of their degree. The authors attributed this to curriculum inflexibility and lack of advocacy by faculty ...
2012). The
UNESCO
Institute
of Statistics (UIS) counted 47,123 US students studying in other countries in 2011, which is roughly equivalent to the US survey count of full-degree
students
The objectives of study abroad Increasingly,
governments
and education agencies are promoting and
study
providing
abroad
incentives
to do so, particularly for
and
undergraduate students, for
clearly did not capture the
whom study abroad may
much larger cohort of over a quarter of a million US study
provide a transformative experience at an early point in
abroad students. The relevant UNESCO data definitions
their academic development (Rowan-Kenyon & Niehaus,
indicate that only students enrolled in courses of at least
2011).
two years’ duration are counted in the UNESCO data collection (UIS, 2014).
A
recent
US
international
education
strategy
Succeeding globally through international education
A robust picture of Australian university students
and engagement (US Department of Education, 2013)
studying abroad is emerging from a national survey first
defined three main areas of benefit that may arise from
undertaken in 2005, when over 7,000 students from
international study experience before graduation. These
Australian universities were identified as studying abroad
largely involve gaining skills to:
(Olsen, 2008), rising to over 24,000 students in 2012
• Work in a global context and enhance their country’s
(AUIDF, 2013). In comparison, UNESCO has reported a relatively static annual figure of around 10,000 Australian
economic competitiveness. • Deal with emerging global challenges (including
students studying in other countries over five years up to
financial, environmental and health-related challenges).
2012 (UIS, 2014). As was the case with the US example
• Engage both with international collaborators and with
above, it is likely that this UNESCO statistic represents a
an increasingly multicultural population at home.
separate cohort of Australian nationals who are studying
Various US agencies have established aspirational targets
full-degree courses in other countries and does not
for growth in the US’s study abroad numbers, including
include Australian study abroad students. However, some
the 100,000-strong initiative to China, the 100,000-strong
degree of overlap between these two cohorts cannot be
in the Americas (encompassing Latin American and
ruled out.
Caribbean destinations) and the Generation Study Abroad
In 2005, it was estimated that 4.8 per cent of completing Australian
undergraduates
had
an
overseas
study
initiative intended to double study abroad numbers by 2020 (IIE, 2014).
experience during the course of their degree (Olsen,
The UK’s Strategy for Outward Mobility (UK Higher
2008), an estimate which rose steadily in subsequent
Education International Unit, 2013) acknowledged the
years, reaching 13.1 per cent in 2012 (AUIDF, 2013). By
economic importance of providing domestic students
comparison, 14.2 per cent of US students studied abroad
with international study experiences and also prioritised
in 2011-12 (Farrugia & Bhandari, 2013).
the comprehensive reporting of data on UK students’ Education
outward mobility to monitor trends. Enhancing data
International Unit (2013) reported that over 15,000 UK
The
United
and data reporting is also an important strategic goal
domestic students studied abroad in 2011-12, primarily
for wider-Europe (Kelo, Teichler & Wächter, 2006; Souto-
through
Otero et al., 2013).
the
Kingdom
European
(UK)
Union’s
Higher
Erasmus
Mobility
Programme. It was estimated that this represented 6
Australian Government agencies and educational
per cent of all UK domestic students in that year. Souto-
institutions have supported outward student mobility,
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Students from Australian universities studying abroad Steve Nerlich
53
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
â&#x20AC;&#x2122;
R
E V
I
E
W
Figure 1: Australian university student instances of study abroad, 2005 to 2012 Source: Data consolidated from six surveys reported in: Olsen (2008); and AUIDF (2008, 2010, 2011, 2012 & 2013).
including study abroad, for many years through a range of
income from a part-time job in order to study abroad.
scholarship and loan programmes (Australian Government,
Perhaps for this reason, uptake of study abroad by
2013). More recently, the Australian Government has
part-time students and community college students
supported study abroad under the New Colombo Plan
has been reported as being relatively uncommon in
(Department of Foreign Affairs and Trade, 2013).
the US (Desoff, 2006). Paus & Robinson (2008) also
Australia has also recognised a need to strengthen the reliability of its data sources on outward student mobility (IEAC, 2013).
discussed curriculum as a significant barrier, where a student may be unable to include units of study abroad in a fixed and inflexible programme. Perhaps for this reason, study abroad is traditionally reported as more
Growing study abroad numbers through democratisation
commonly pursued by students studying liberal arts degrees, rather than students studying less-flexible science, technology, engineering and mathematics
Salisbury et al. (2009) described democratising under-
(STEM) degrees, which may have a lower capacity for
graduate study abroad as a major next step in the
including elective units.
evolution of American education, indicating intent to
While
credit
recognition
for
study
abroad
is
expand study abroad opportunities beyond the limited
increasingly commonplace, it is not commonly graded
demographic groups that currently dominate it. Twombly,
credit, which may be perceived as a disadvantage by
Salisbury, Tumanut and Klute (2012) have described the
students seeking to maximise their grade point average,
predominant demographic profile within the US study
reported as a particularly important issue for students in
abroad population as being female students, generally from
pre-professional degrees such as medicine, architecture
higher socioeconomic backgrounds, who have travelled
and engineering (Stroud, 2010).
previously, have university-educated parents and study in
Paus & Robinson (2008) also noted that while many
the arts, humanities and social sciences. Bell and Watkins
students in the first year of their study programme
(2006) noted a similar dominant profile in ERASMUS
expressed enthusiasm to study abroad, this was often
exchange students in Europe and Daly (2011) reported
not realised over the course of their degree. The authors
much the same for Australian exchange students.
attributed this to curriculum inflexibility and lack of
Doyle et al. (2010) suggested that the demographic
advocacy by faculty, particularly in STEM-related fields.
profile of students who study abroad is constrained by
The following analysis of Australian study abroad data
perceived and actual barriers such as cost, which may
outlines what is currently known about the demographic
be both financial or opportunity cost, an example of
profile of the Australian study abroad population. The
the latter being where students must waive potential
analysis focuses on whether particular groups are under-
54
Students from Australian universities studying abroad Steve Nerlich
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
â&#x20AC;&#x2122;
R
E V
I
E
W
Figure 2: Percentage of Australian university study abroad students by Destination, Level & Field of Education in 2012 Source: AUIDF (2013) Legend: Destination: the Other category includes instances for which destination was not reported. Level: PG â&#x20AC;&#x201C; C is Postgraduate by coursework; PG â&#x20AC;&#x201C; R is postgraduate by research; UG is undergraduate. Field (of education): ASSH is arts, social sciences and the humanities; STEM is science, technology, engineering and mathematics, which includes information technology and agriculture, environment and related studies; Mgt is management and commerce.
represented and to what extent further massification
in 2012, 68 per cent of short-term student mobility was to
through democratisation could be achieved.
China, compared with only 19 per cent to the US.
Data on Australian study abroad students
students from Australian universities according to the
Figure 2 summarises AUIDF data of study abroad destination region, the level of student course, and the The annual survey of Australian universities undertaken by
field of education of the course being undertaken by
the Australian Universities International Directors Forum
study abroad students. The graph represents 24,763
(AUIDF) since 2009, with two earlier surveys reported for
students engaged in study abroad in 2012.
2005 and 2007 provides the best picture of study abroad
With respect to destination, about one-third of study
activity from Australia at a national level. The data do not
abroad in 2012 was to Asia, a proportion that has steadily
identify students or their home institutions, but do provide
grown since 2005, when it was 26 per cent. Of this cohort,
a range of demographic details about the student cohort.
2,145 students studied in China and 835 in Japan. The
As shown in Figure 1, the number of Australian university
major English-speaking destinations, the US (3,672), the
students studying abroad is clearly growing strongly. In
UK (2,115), Canada (1,277) and New Zealand (723), when
2012, there were 24,763 instances of Australian university
combined, represented just one-third of all study abroad
students studying abroad, with over 17,000 involving
instances in 2012. Apart from the UK, the main European
undergraduates.
countries attracting study abroad students from Australian
Instances of short-term study abroad are becoming increasingly popular with students from Australian
universities were Italy (996), France (974) and Germany (933) (AUIDF, 2013).
universities.This is also a common trend in other countries
Figure 2 also indicates that undergraduate students
with study abroad programmes (Chieffo & Griffiths, 2004).
represented nearly three-quarters of all study abroad
In the 2005 survey, 46 per cent of all instances of student
in 2012, which is reflective of their proportional
mobility were short-term programmes (less than one
representation
semester), which rose steadily to 66 per cent in the 2012
However, postgraduate research students were over-
survey. These instances of short-term student mobility
represented, making up 11 per cent of the study abroad
more commonly involve destinations in Asia. For example,
population, although only 3 per cent of the overall student
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
in
the
overall
student
population.
Students from Australian universities studying abroad Steve Nerlich
55
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
to level of study. More than 40 per cent of undergraduate research student instances did. It is likely that many of
T
I
E
Study abroad or student exchange
were in a formal study exchange programme. However,
Do not know about
the available data could not be desegregated sufficiently to confirm this (AUIDF, 2013). education is commonly reported to be skewed towards an over-representation of arts, social sciences and humanities students and an under-representation of science, technology, engineering and mathematics (STEM) students (Paus & Robinson, 2008). In 2012, the largest
’
R
E V
Student year 1st year
the undergraduates studying for more than one semester
Study abroad propensity across different fields of
S
I
E
W
Table 1: Survey responses from first and later year Australian domestic university students (2012)
population.The duration of study abroad varied according instances exceeding one semester, but few postgraduate
S I
Total Later years
7%
8%
7%
Have not decided
28%
16%
22%
Do not plan to do
33%
56%
46%
Plan to do
29%
12%
20%
Done
2%
8%
5%
Total
100%
100%
100%
Source: ACER: unpublished data collected in the 2012 AUSSE from 17,585 domestic students.
proportion of Australian study abroad experiences were in the arts etc. fields (29 per cent), while 18 per cent were
students’ awareness of, and participation in, study abroad
in STEM fields. However, a proper estimate of propensity
and student exchange programmes.The survey provides a
also needs to consider the base population.
useful source of demographic data on students who do or
When compared with the base university student
do not study abroad.
population in 2012, arts etc. fields (21 per cent of base)
In 2012, a survey of over 17,000 Australian domestic
did appear somewhat over-represented in the study
university undergraduate students found that 31 per cent of
abroad population (29 per cent), although STEM fields
first year students planned to (29 per cent), or had already
(19 per cent of base) seemed relatively-well represented
(2 per cent) studied abroad. However, only 20 per cent of
in the study abroad population (18 per cent). The most
later year students were still planning to (12 per cent), or
under-represented area was management and commerce,
had already (8 per cent) studied abroad. The unweighted
representing only 14 per cent of the study abroad
size of the first and later year cohorts surveyed in 2012
population, but 22 per cent of the base population. This
were similar (both exceeding 8,000 students).
is a surprising finding given a key objective of study
To frame this finding in a different way, while only 33
abroad is to enhance Australian students’ ability to engage
per cent of first year students reported that they would
in international business. This finding suggests there is a
not be studying overseas during their degree, 56 per
need to better promote the benefits of study abroad to
cent of later year students reported the same. This same
students and faculty in management and commerce.
disparity in early intention versus later realisation of that
As noted, study abroad participants are often reported
intent can be seen in the annual AUSSE survey findings
as more likely to be female.The AUIDF (2013) reported 59
back to 2008, when nearly 29 per cent first year students
per cent of the mobility in 2012 was by women. However,
planned to (27 per cent), or had already (two per cent)
this should be considered in the context that the Australian
studied abroad, while only 18 per cent of later year
base population of domestic higher education students
students still planned to (12 per cent), or had already (six
comprised 58 per cent women in 2012. Thus, at least in
per cent) studied abroad. These data suggest that many
recent years, the higher proportion of women in the study
Australian students failed to realise an initial intention to
abroad population does not suggest that Australian female
study abroad.
university students have a substantially higher propensity to study abroad than their male counterparts.
The propensity of Australian domestic students studying under different life circumstances was also investigated, by considering the variables of attendance
Data on student propensity for studying abroad
status, employment while studying and socioeconomic
The Australian Survey of Student Engagement (AUSSE)
students in 2012 had a lower propensity to have studied
was conducted across Australian universities from
abroad than full-time students and were less likely to be
2007 to 2012 (ACER (Australian Council of Educational
planning to study abroad.A noticeably higher proportion
Research), 2014) and included a question to assess
of part-time students also did not know about the
status. As shown in Table 2, it was clear that part-time
56
Students from Australian universities studying abroad Steve Nerlich
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Table 2: Survey responses for part-time and full-time students (2012)
Table 3: Survey responses for students from different socioeconomic backgrounds
Study abroad or student exchange
Study abroad or student exchange
Attendance type Part time
Total
Full time
Socioeconomic status
Total
Low
Middle
High
Do not know about
9%
8%
7%
8%
22%
Have not decided
22%
22%
21%
22%
42%
46%
Do not plan to do
49%
46%
43%
46%
Plan to do
17%
19%
22%
20%
Done
3%
5%
7%
5%
Total
100%
100%
100%
100%
Do not know about
11%
6%
7%
Have not decided
15%
24%
Do not plan to do
59%
Plan to do
11%
22%
20%
Done
3%
6%
5%
Total
100%
100%
100%
Source: ACER: unpublished data collected in the 2012 AUSSE from 17,585 domestic students.
Source: ACER: unpublished data collected in the 2012 AUSSE from 17,423 domestic students. Socioeconomic status was estimated from residential postcode.
opportunities available to them. It was also possible to independently sort study abroad responses by whether
2012, reporting not knowing of these opportunities.
or not students were in paid employment. No clear
This suggests a small, but somewhat intractable lack of
correlation between paid employment and study abroad
awareness of the opportunities available.
propensity was found. However, a clear correlation was found between
Conclusions
Australian students’ socioeconomic status (SES) and their propensity to study abroad. As shown in Table 3,
Australian study abroad has become a well-established
the AUSSE survey confirmed a common finding in other
feature of Australian higher education and looks set to
countries, such as the USA (Salisbury et al., 2009) and the
continue growing in parallel with increasing support
UK (Brooks and Waters, 2011) that socioeconomic status
and promotion by both education institutions and
positively influences student propensity to study abroad.
governments.Although the volume of activity may appear
From a cohort of Australian domestic students surveyed
modest, the proportion of Australian students studying
in the 2012 AUSSE, 20 per cent of the low SES cohort was
abroad has been found to be on par with nations such
planning to or had already studied abroad, compared with
as the US.
24 per cent of the middle SES and 29 per cent of the high
The AUIDF survey represents the most comprehensive
SES cohorts. Nonetheless, much like part-time study, low
and timely national information source on Australian
SES status was a negative influence, but not an absolute
university
barrier. There was only a weak correlation between
based data collection does not allow disaggregation
SES status and attendance type (full or part-time) and
of some potentially distinctive features of Australian
the calculated effect size was minor (ACER, 2014, pers.
undergraduate and postgraduate student mobility. It
comm.).This suggests that attendance type and SES status
is also difficult to differentiate trends with respect to
are largely independent influences on Australian domestic
different destination countries and regions. Nonetheless,
students’ propensity to study abroad.
the survey’s adherence to consistent measures across
students
studying
abroad. The
survey-
An important finding from this survey data is that more
sequential years is commendable and allows monitoring
than 7 per cent of domestic students surveyed in 2012
of some key trends over time. This data source may grow
reported they did not know about opportunities for
in detail and sophistication as outward student mobility
study abroad or student exchange, with slightly higher
attracts greater public interest in Australia.
proportions of around 9 per cent and 11 per cent for
The US has recognised that further increasing its
the low SES and part-time student cohorts respectively.
already substantial numbers of students studying abroad
The proportion of students reporting that they did not
requires further diversification of its current study abroad
know about opportunities for study abroad or student
population, a process referred to as democratisation
exchange has changed only marginally in previous years
(Salisbury et al., 2009). If Australia has similar aspirations,
of the AUSSE survey, with between 7 and 8 per cent of
there is a need for national-level data that will enable the
domestic students surveyed, in each year from 2007 to
monitoring of trends over time and provide a detailed
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Students from Australian universities studying abroad Steve Nerlich
57
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
demographic profile of those who study abroad and those who do not.
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Analysis of the AUSSE survey data also indicated a correlation between students’ socioeconomic status and
The results of the analysis outlined in this paper are
their propensity to study abroad, as has been reported
counter to some traditional assumptions about study
elsewhere (Doyle et al., 2010). However, neither low
abroad, particularly that female students are over-
socioeconomic status nor part-time attendance were found
represented in the study abroad population. In Australia,
to be absolute barriers. Again, the increasing availability
this seems only to be true to the extent that the
of short-term study abroad experiences may be making
predominance of women in the study abroad population
study abroad a more feasible option for students with
reflects their predominance in the general student
limited financial resources or limited time. It may be the
population.
growing availability of short-term study abroad options
The over-representation of women may have been true
that becomes the most important factor in enabling the
in the past in Australia and is still apparent in current US
democratisation of study abroad opportunities (Desoff,
study abroad data (Farrugia et al., 2012), perhaps arising
2006;Twombly et al., 2012).
from an over-representation of arts, humanities and social
For Australia, studying abroad for credit rather than for
sciences students in the study abroad population, who
a full award qualification has become the dominant form
are more often female, and the under-representation of
of outward student mobility in recent years. The global
students in the STEM disciplines, who are more often
significance of such non-award study is not apparent in
male. It is possible that the recent growth in short-term
traditional data sources on international student mobility,
study abroad opportunities has enabled more students to
such as UNESCO, which only collects and reports data on
bypass traditional problems with programme inflexibility
international students studying in courses of more than
in STEM courses, because students are now more able to
two years’ duration.
study abroad during semester or summer breaks.
An alternative source of data on global student mobility,
Another important source of historical data on
IIE’s Project Atlas, identified China as the third-most
Australian student mobility is the AUSSE, a national
popular destination for international students globally in
survey of Australian university students, which provides
2012 by virtue of counting all students, not just students
a valuable source of data on the demographic context of
in award courses (IEE, 2013). In 2012, UNESCO identified
students who chose to study abroad, as well as those who
China as only the eighth most popular destination for
do not. Comparison of the early intentions of first year
international students, by virtue of its narrower definition
students and the actual participation of later year students
of an international student. In 2013, only 41 per cent of
suggests that study abroad is an immediately attractive
the more than 350,000 international students studying in
proposition for Australian students, but as some students
China were award students (China Association of Hong
work through their degrees, they are unable to fulfil that
Kong, 2014) and it is likely that they are the only students
initial intent, perhaps due to barriers such as financial
being counted by UNESCO.
cost, opportunity cost or programme inflexibility.
To appreciate fully the extent of international student
These findings suggest that there remains a need to
mobility in the twenty-first century, it is important to
convince all Australian university students that there is
count as many different forms of mobility as is feasible.
a tangible return on investment in the cost of studying
This paper has sought to highlight the importance
abroad. Paus & Robinson (2008) have argued that
of collecting data on non-award and short-term study
academic staff are key to both establishing study abroad
experiences, which are both areas of high volume and
programmes and also encouraging students to participate
rapid growth. Currently, Australia collects and publishes
in them. Recognition of credit gained through study
data on all incoming students on student visas, regardless
abroad is likely to be a key issue, as is the awarding
of whether they are studying award courses or not and
institution’s acknowledgement that study abroad delivers
regardless of their course duration. Countries such as
valuable and relevant learning outcomes for graduates.
the US and China are doing much the same. Such public
AUIDF (2013) reported that 93 per cent of study abroad
reporting of student mobility data benefits all nations
experiences in 2012 gained credit. Pitman and Broomhall
that are engaged in international education. It highlights
(2009) reported that 71 per cent of Australian universities,
the value of international education and enhances
which reported providing graduate attributes statements
participation in it.
in 2009, listed intercultural awareness and international perspective as key competencies.
58
Students from Australian universities studying abroad Steve Nerlich
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Acknowledgements
Doyle, S., Gendall, P., Meyer, L. H., Hoek, J., Tait, C., McKenzie, L., & Loorparg, A. (2010). An investigation of factors associated with student participation in study abroad. Journal of Studies in International Education, 14(5), 471-490.
The author gratefully acknowledges the assistance of
Farrugia, C.A., Bhandari, R & Chow, P. (2012). Open Doors 2012, Report on International Education Exchange. New York: Institute of International Education.
Alan Olsen and members of the Australian Universities International Directors’ Forum, as well as Alexandra Research, in the preparation of this paper.
Farrugia, C.A. & Bhandari, R. (2013). Open Doors 2013, Report on International Education Exchange. New York: Institute of International Education.
Steve Nerlich (steve.nerlich@anu.edu.au) is a PhD candidate
IEAC (2013). Australia – Educating Globally: Advice from the International Education Advisory Council. Canberra: Commonwealth of Australia.
Radloff and the Australian Council for Educational
at the Australian National University and also Director of the International Research and Analysis Unit in the Australian Government Department of Education, Canberra, Australia.
IIE (2014). Institute of International Education: Generation Study Abroad. Retrieved from: http://www.iie.org/Programs/Generation-Study-Abroad.
References ACER (Australian Council of Educational Research). (2014). Australasian Survey of Student Engagement (AUSSE). Retrieved from: http://www.acer.edu.au/ausse.
Kelo, M., Teichler, U. & Wächter, B. (2006). Toward improved data on student mobility in Europe: Findings and concepts of the Eurodata Study. Journal of Studies in International Education, 10(3), 194-223. Olsen, A. (2008). International mobility of Australian university students: 2005. Journal of Studies in International Education, 12(4), 364-374.
AUIDF (2008). Outgoing International Mobility of Australian University Students 2007. Retrieved from: http://www.spre.com.au/download/ AUIDFMobility2007AIECPaper.pdf. AUIDF (2010). Australian Universities International Directors Forum: Research agenda 2010. Retrieved from: http://aiec.idp.com/uploads/pdf/2010_Olsen_ Wed_1430_B104_Paper.pdf. AUIDF (2011). Australian Universities International Directors Forum: Research agenda 2011. Retrieved from: http://cunningham.acer.edu.au/inted/ AIEC2011AUIDFResearchPaper.pdf. AUIDF (2012). Australian Universities International Directors Forum: Research agenda 2012. Retrieved from: http://aiec.idp.com/uploads/pdf/2012_olsen_ fri_1235_217.pdf. AUIDF (2013). Australian Universities International Directors Forum: Research agenda 2013. Retrieved from: www.spre.com.au/download/ AIEC2013AUIDFResearchPaper.pdf. Australian Government. (2013). Study overseas: Money matters. Retrieved from: http://www.studyoverseas.gov.au/money_matters/Pages/default.aspx. Belyavina, R., & Bhandari, R. (2012). US students in overseas degree programs: key destinations and fields of study. Bell, J. E., & Watkins, R. A. (2006). Strategies in dealing with the Bologna Process. International Educator, Washington, 15(5). Brooks, R., & Waters, J. (2011). Fees, funding and overseas study: mobile UK students and educational inequalities. Sociological Research Online, 16(2), 1. Chieffo, L., & Griffiths, L. (2004). Large-Scale Assessment of Student Attitudes after a Short-Term Study Abroad Program. Frontiers: The Interdisciplinary Journal of Study Abroad, 10, 165-177.
Paus, E., & Robinson, M. (2008). Increasing study abroad participation: The faculty makes the difference. Frontiers: The Interdisciplinary Journal of Study Abroad, 17, 33--49. Pitman, T., & Broomhall, S. (2009). Australian universities, generic skills and lifelong learning. International Journal of Lifelong Education, 28(4), 439-458. Rowan-Kenyon, H. T. & Niehaus, E. K. (2011). One year later: The influence of short-term study abroad experiences on students. Journal of Student Affairs Research and Practice, 48(2), 207-222. Salisbury, M. H., Umbach, P. D., Paulsen, M. B., & Pascarella, E. T. (2009). Going global: Understanding the choice process of the intent to study abroad. Research in Higher Education, 50(2), 119-143. Souto-Otero, M.,l; Huisman, J., Beerkens, M., de Wit, H., & Vujic, S. (2013). Barriers to International Student Mobility Evidence From the Erasmus Program. Educational Researcher 42.2, 70-77. Stroud, A. H. (2010). Who plans (not) to study abroad? An examination of U.S. student intent. Journal of Studies in International Education, 14(5), 491–507. Twombly, S. B., Salisbury, M. H., Tumanut, S. D., & Klute, P. (Eds.) (2012). Study Abroad in a New Global Century: Renewing the Promise, Refining the Purpose, ASHE Higher Education Report, 38(4). San Francisco, CA: Jossey-Bass. UIS. (2014). International Standard Classification of Education (pages 48-49). Retrieved from: http://www.uis.unesco.org/Library/Documents/2011international-standard-classification-education-isced-2012-en.pdf. UK Higher Education International Unit. (2013). .UK Strategy for Outward Mobility. Retrieved from: http://www.international.ac.uk/media/2468186/uk-heinternational-unit-uk-strategy-for-outward-mobility.pdf.
China Association of Hong Kong. (2014). Tabulated data retrieved from: http:// www.cafsa.org.cn/index.php?mid=6. Daly, A. (2011). Determinants of participating in Australian university student exchange programs. Journal of Research in International Education, 10(1), 58-70. Department of Foreign Affairs and Trade (2013). New Colombo Plan. Retrieved from: http://www.dfat.gov.au/new-colombo-plan.
IIE (2013). Institute of International Education: Project Atlas Trends and Global Data Fact Sheet. Retrieved from: http://www.iie.org/~/media/Files/Services/ ProjectAtlas/Project-Atlas-Trends-and-Global-Data-2013.ashx.
US Department of Education. (2013). Succeeding globally through international education and engagement: US Department of Education International Strategy. Retrieved from: http://www2.ed.gov/about/inits/ed/internationaled/ international-strategy-2012-16.pdf.
Dessoff, A. (2006). Who’s not going abroad? International Educator, 15(2), 20-27.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Students from Australian universities studying abroad Steve Nerlich
59
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Time for a Western Australian ‘Group of Three’? A speculative essay Michael Turner & Alistair Brown Curtin University
This study analyses the theoretical cost-savings that might flow from a merger of three of Western Australia’s five universities. The results of the study show that an amalgamation would not only reduce costs of operation, but also improve non-current asset use and accountability. Combination reporting also allows the key stakeholders to appraise these universities’ main financial activities, which appear to be maintaining a relatively high level of non-salary expenditure as a percentage of revenue and preserving a very high percentage of land and buildings as mainstay assets. Keywords: mergers, efficiency and effectiveness, Western Australian universities
Introduction
Most of Australia’s first universities were founded in the 19th century in other states (although the University of
This paper explores the potential cost savings from
Queensland was founded in 1909), with the University of
a creation of a Western Australian Group of Three
Western Australia (UWA) founded in 1911 but opened in
university (WAGo3), via an amalgamation of three of the
1913. The other four WA universities are relatively young.
five universities in Western Australia. Western Australia is
Harkin and Healy (2013) note that Curtin University, a
Australia’s largest state by land area (over 2,500,000 km2)
former technical college, was established in 1986, Murdoch
occupying the western one-third of Australia. Sparsely
University was established in 1973 but opened in 1975, and
populated in the rural regions, Western Australia has a
Edith Cowan University (ECU), formerly a teachers’ college,
population of 2.53 million, with most living in the Perth
then a college of advanced education, was established in
metropolitan area (1.55 million). Using one million
1991. Notre Dame University was established in 1989, but
people as the criterion for a ‘city’, Perth is one of the most
it is a private university and outside the scope of this study
isolated cities in the world. The nearest Australian city to
which focuses on the potential merger of three public
Perth by air is Adelaide which is 2,100 km away. Moreover,
Western Australian universities. The University of Western
major cities more than 3,000 km away from Perth include
Australia is the only one in the state of Western Australia to
Jakarta, Indonesia (3,000 km), Melbourne (3,420 km) and
sit in the Top 100 Academic Ranking of World Universities
Sydney (3,290 km).
ranking (AWRU, 2014).
60
Time for a Western Australian ‘Group of Three’? Michael Turner & Alistair Brown
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
We look at a merged WAGo3 comprising Curtin
form of merger (Murdoch University, 2014; Stanley &
University, Edith Cowan University and Murdoch
Reynolds, 1994). In 1988, at the time of the so-called
University.We did not include UWA in the merger because,
‘Dawkins
consistent with the recent findings of Turner and Brown
University of Western Australia opened up negotiations
(2013), there appears merit in merging UWA with other
for a proposed merger (Murdoch University, 2014). In
relatively older and more established universities. Each of
1989, Murdoch University requested the State Minister
the three suggested merging universities is successful in
for Education to prepare legislation to help amalgamate
its own right. Curtin University is renowned for its close
Murdoch University and the University of Western Australia
ties to the mining giants Alcoa, Chevron, Origin Energy
to take effect from 1990 (Murdoch, 2014). However,
and Woodside Petroleum (Curtin University, 2013a);
in the following year the proposed legislation for the
ECU has a fine nursing and midwifery research ranking
amalgamation was blocked by one vote on Christmas Eve
(ECU, 2013a); and Murdoch University has the only
in the Western Australian Legislative Council (Murdoch
internationally recognised veterinary course in Western
University 2013a), by the Nationals who were anxious
Australia (Murdoch University, 2011). Nevertheless,
to see an ‘independent’ Veterinary School maintained in
according to Ernst & Young (2012), there is potential
Western Australia. This was a time when the ‘Dawkins
for Australian universities to lower their operating costs
Reforms’ replaced the binary system of universities and
in order to become more competitive in the academic
colleges of advanced education with a unified national
market.
system, where former colleges of advanced education and
Reforms’, Murdoch
University
and
the
The aim of this paper is to analyse the theoretical
institutions of technology merged or were relabelled as
potential cost-savings in forming a WAGo3. This
universities (Meek, 1991). In 1986, Murdoch University
follows from the work of Turner & Brown (2013) that
and Edith Cowan University opened up talks for a possible
considered the case for a merged Australian ‘Group
merger, but again (a year later) the planned amalgamation
of Seven’ (Go7), which had the potential to boost the
was dropped (Murdoch University, 2013a). In 2005, merger
bottom line by cutting costs. Such a move could be
talks between Murdoch University and Curtin University
of interest to the current Federal Government, with
once again failed to develop an eventual amalgamation
its Commission of Audit examining ways to decrease
(Murdoch University 2013a). Moreover, in the same year
expenditure (Lane, 2013), and the Western Australian
there was speculation that a ‘super’ university consisting
State Government operating from an ‘Education City’ of
of the amalgamation of Curtin University, Edith Cowan
over 1.5 million people (AEN, 2013), looking to reduce
University and Murdoch University might take place
government expenditure after losing its AAA credit
(Weber, 2005).
rating (Burrell, 2013).
At the time, it was argued by the Vice-Chancellor of
In accordance with the assumptions and limitations of Turner and Brown’s (2013) study of the proposed ‘Go7’ merger of seven of Australia’s major research universities, this paper deals with a speculative possibility, limiting its comments about each of the WAGo3’s cultures, histories, and individual policy initiatives. The study makes no recommendation as to the legal and political means of achieving a joint WAGo3, and focuses on a monetary rather than a non-monetary valuation. It also does not look at the ramifications of a WAGo3 merger on other universities, although the results of this study could well be of interest to other universities, politicians, legislators, academic strategists and taxpayers looking for cost efficiencies on a
Edith Cowan University that such a merger would reduce costs to students and would give Perth the draw card of Australia’s biggest university. It would serve a massive number of students, at least 60,000, with some estimates at 75,000, and it would attract crucial research funding (Weber, 2005). Nevertheless, the Vice-Chancellor of Curtin University said that A three-way merger adds an awful lot of students to the complex. I mean, currently Curtin is 36-37,000 students. If you add Murdoch into that equation as well, we become the third largest university in the country anyway in regard to student numbers. I think that’s going to be hard work (Weber, 2005).
state or national scale. Turner and Brown (2013) considered the advantages for
Literature review
a merged Group of Seven. They found that combination reporting identifies potential cost-savings in a merger,
All four Western Australian public universities have
particularly in terms of salary and non-salary reductions,
expressed interest in the past about considering some
as well as reductions in land and property holdings.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Time for a Western Australian ‘Group of Three’? Michael Turner & Alistair Brown
61
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Table 1. Comprehensive Income of universities of Western Australia (Year Ended 2012) Curtin University $’000
(%)
Revenue
792,438
Salaries Academic Staff Salaries – Other Staff Non-salary expenditure
Edith Cowan University
Murdoch University
Total (WAGo3) $’000
UWA
$’000
(%)
$’000
(%)
(%)
$’000
(%)
(100.0)
378,674
100.0
328,921
100.0
1,500,033
100.0
923,771
100.0
239,249
30.2
101,867
26.9
84,955
25.8
426,071
28.4
276,355
29.9
195,636
24.7
112,676
29.8
85,272
26.0
393,584
26.2
237,904
25.8
36.5
125,699
38.2
541,403
36.1
307,468
33.3
93.2 295,926
90.0
1,361,058
90.7
821,727
89.0
102,044
11.0
102,044
11.0
277,177
35.0
138,527
712,062
89.9
353,070
80,376
10.1
25,604
6.8
32,995
10.0
138,975
9.3
Revaluation PPE*
23,308
3.0
(962)
(0.3)
66,319
20.2
88,665
5.9
Comprehensive Income
103,684
13.1
24,642
6.5
99,314
30.2
227,640
15.2
Total expenses Operating income Comprehensive income (other):
Source: Curtin University, 2013b; ECU, 2013b; Murdoch University, 2013b; UWA, 2013. *PPE stands for property, plant and equipment.
Methods
This study assumes that there were no significant inter- WAGo3 university transactions and that no WAGo3
Online annual reports of Curtin University, Edith Cowan
university-held assets or liabilities belonging to the other
University, Murdoch University and the University of
two WAGo3 universities.
Western Australia for the year ending 2012 were gathered to conduct a textual analysis of their annual reporting
Results
procedures. Consistent with the methodology of Turner and Brown (2013), textual analysis was facilitated by business
Table 1 shows expenditure, operating income and
combination reporting analysis, informed by auditing,
comprehensive income as a percentage of revenue for
accounting and investigative skills on the final accounts
the WAGo3 universities and UWA. Ranging from $328.9
and statements of four Western Australian universities in
million (Murdoch University) to $792.4 million (Curtin
terms of their performance.This allowed the analysis
University), the revenue from each of the WAGo3
…to express an opinion on the credibility of the accounts… based on evidence from the phenomena of final accounts to form opinions on the accounting and value of the accounts (Turner & Brown, 2013; p. 46).
Universities is lower than UWA’s revenue of $923.7 million. However, together, the WAGo3 generated some $1,500m, a considerable amount of revenue for a potential merger, exceeding UWA revenue by $576.3m. Each of the WAGo3 Universities has considerable total
The financial statements within the annual reports of
expenditure, ranging from $295.9 million (Murdoch
all four universities are examined annually by the Auditor
University) to $712 million (Curtin University), although
General of Western Australia, and in recent years have
they were each lower than UWA’s total expenditure of
secured unqualified audits.
$821m. Together, WAGo3 Universities total expenditure is
All four West[ern] Australian universities have been given a tick of approval for their financial viability despite static student demand in the resource-rich state. The Western Australian Auditor-General’s report tabled in state parliament yesterday noted that all four public universities were “generally low risk” in terms of financial performance with good liquidity, diverse revenue streams, and moderate reliance on international student fees (Hare, 2013).
62
$1,361 million and we argue that a considerable cut in total expenditure could be made with a potential merger, particularly through non-current asset sales. In
considering
the
individual
components
of
expenditure, UWA’s total academic salary bill ($276 million) is above each of the academic salary bills of the WAGo3 universities, but as a percentage of total revenue it is slightly lower (29.9 per cent) than Curtin University
Time for a Western Australian ‘Group of Three’? Michael Turner & Alistair Brown
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Table 2. Statement of Financial Position for the four public Western Australia Universities as at 31 December 2012 Curtin University Current assets:
Edith Cowan University
Murdoch University
Total (WAGo3)
UWA
$’000
$’000
$’000
$’000
$’000
Cash
79,619
51,429
121,019
252,067
121,397
Other financial assets
99,226
98,719
13,919
211,864
0
3,919
2,887
0
6,806
0
32,259
33,180
7,108
72,547
63,337
215,023
186,215
142,046
543,284
184,734
324,904
69,611
48,038
442,553
487,502
Deferred Government Grant Other Current Assets Total Current Assets Non-Current Assets: Financial Assets Deferred Government Grant
69,667
26,816
0
96,483
0
Land
84,333
134,126
219,005
437,464
267,569
577,658
648,130
568,245
1,794,033
740,315
PPE
28,677
12,340
29,030
70,047
67,399
Other Non-Current Assets
32,095
24,591
16,224
72,910
115,382
Total Non-Current Assets
1,117,334
915,614
880,542
2,913,490
1,678,167
Total Assets
1,332,357
1,101,829
1,022,588
3,456,774
1,862,901
154,758
77,967
231,888
464,613
162,350
Building including Work In Progress
Current Liabilities Deferred benefit obligations
73,586
29,703
0
103,289
0
Non-Current Liabilities
85,672
130,126
13,056
228,854
131,474
314,016
237,796
244,944
796,756
293,824
1,018,341
864,033
777,644
2,660,018
1,569,077
57,851
380,519
380,911
819,281
161,976
Total Liabilities Net Assets Equity: Capital and Reserves Retained Earnings Total Equity
960,490
483,514
396,733
1,840,737
1,407,101
1,018,341
864,033
777,644
2,660,018
1,569,077
Source: Curtin University, 2013b; ECU, 2013b; Murdoch University, 2013b; UWA, 2013.
(30.2 per cent).While UWA’s ‘other staff’ salary bill is lower
UWA’s non-salary expenditure as a percentage of
than its total academic salary expenditure, the total ‘other
revenue earned (33.3 per cent) is less than revenue earned
staff’ salary bill of Edith Cowan and Murdoch University
by the other WAGo3 universities. Well over one third of
exceed their respective total academic salary outlays.
revenue is spent on non-salary expenditure by WAGo3
However, it should be acknowledged that in the case of
universities. While it is useful to recognise that some
Murdoch University, ‘other staff’ salaries is only slightly
portion of the non-salary expenditure may be devoted
higher than academic salaries. Edith Cowan’s figure of
to assisting the remit of the university’s teaching and
29.8 per cent for ‘other staff’ salaries is significantly higher
research, it is also pertinent to acknowledge that for all
than the other three universities.
universities of Western Australian non-salary expenditure
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Time for a Western Australian ‘Group of Three’? Michael Turner & Alistair Brown
63
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
Table 3. Buildings and land with buildings to total assets. Buildings to Total Assets (%)
Land & Buildings to Total Assets (%)
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Table 4. Buildings and land with buildings to total assets (excluding deferred government grants from total assets) Buildings to Total Assets (%)
Land & Buildings to Total Assets (%)
Curtin University
43.4
49.7
Edith Cowan University
58.8
71.0
Curtin University
45.9
52.6
Murdoch University
55.6
77.0
Edith Cowan University
60.5
71.0
55.6
77.0
UWA
39.7
54.1
Murdoch University
Overall
47.6
60.9
UWA
39.7
54.1
Overall
48.6
62.1
Source: Curtin University, 2013b; ECU, 2013b; Murdoch University, 2013b; UWA, 2013.
Source: Curtin University, 2013b; ECU, 2013b; Murdoch University, 2013b; UWA, 2013.
is higher than academic staff salaries expenditure, with
has shown a provision of $8.4 million in the notes to
the latter expenditure directly assisting in the remit of
the accounts, but does not show a separate amount
teaching and research.
in receivables. Murdoch University has not included
Edith Cowan University had the lowest operating income ($25m) and comprehensive income ($24m). This
a liability or an asset for these benefits. It is debatable whether UWA has shown a sufficient asset and liability.
is due to their combined ‘other staff salaries’ and ‘non-salary
An analysis of land and buildings of the four universities
expenditure’ as a percentage of revenue (66.3 per cent)
shows that the percentage of land and buildings as a
being higher than the other Western Australian universities.
proportion of total assets is also significantly higher
Clearly, there are possible cost-savings in these areas.
for Murdoch University (77 per cent) and Edith Cowan
Murdoch University’s comprehensive income was three
University (71 per cent). A merger could significantly
times its operating income because of a large $66m gain
reduce the number of buildings needed to service the
due to an upward revaluation of land and buildings.
WAGo3.
Table 2 depicts aggregated and comparative figures
As shown in Table 4, the ‘buildings to total assets’ ratio
for the Statement of Financial Position which provides
(excluding deferred government grants from total assets)
a broad picture of the universities’ assets, liabilities and
for Edith Cowan University (60.5 per cent) and Murdoch
equity. Total current assets of Curtin University and Edith
University (55.6 per cent) are well above the ‘buildings
Cowan University are each larger than UWA, and when
to total assets’ ratio of the University of Western Australia
aggregated with Murdoch University, the WAGo3 total
(39.7 per cent) and Curtin University (43.4 per cent).
current assets are just under three times that of UWA.
Consistent with the ‘land and buildings to total assets’
UWA, however, has considerably more non-current
results from Table 3, the results of the ‘land and buildings
assets than any other university in the state of Western
to total assets ratio’ (excluding deferred government
Australia. A potential WAGo3 merger could see WAGo3
grants from total assets) for Murdoch University (77 per
holding
assets
cent) and Edith Cowan University (71 per cent) are much
than UWA. Most of the non-current assets held by
higher than the ratios secured by UWA (54.1 per cent) or
the four universities are in buildings. It is noticeable
Curtin University (52.6 per cent).
$1,050,589,000
more
non-current
that Edith Cowan University and Murdoch University have relatively few non-current financial assets. Even
Conclusion
a merged WAGo3 would have fewer financial assets in total than UWA.
If combination reporting analysis can be viewed as an
It is interesting to note that Curtin University and Edith
instrument of financial comparison and contrast, it can
Cowan University include an asset deferred government
also be regarded as a tool of expenditure and resource
grant in their receivables and a liability of deferred
allocation that exposes complex state organisations to a
benefit obligations in their provisions. These were for
rigorous financial probe. Part of its intricate dissemination
unfunded superannuation benefits, with reimbursement
of reality is that it represents the use of accounting and
guaranteed by the Federal Government and amounted
accountability techniques associated with university
to $73.6 million and $29.7 million respectively. UWA
financial calculations.
64
Time for a Western Australian ‘Group of Three’? Michael Turner & Alistair Brown
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
The revenue streams from Edith Cowan University
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Alistair Brown is currently working at the School of
and Murdoch University are much smaller than the
Accounting, Curtin University, and is a member of a number
other two public Western Australian universities and,
of professional accounting bodies. His higher education
and while revenue size should not define a university, it
interests include emerging areas within the Melanesian
is clear from the combination reporting analysis that a
accounting curriculum, and opportunity costs associated with
combined WAGo3 presents a set of joint revenue figures
the provision of student services.
that exceeds University of Western Australia’s standalone revenue by over 50 per cent. This paper makes no comment on how this pooled revenue should be spent, but it does give a joint WAGo3 a glimpse of the potential pull such income might have for either the research or teaching programmes. Moreover, the material presence of a revenue pool far in excess of UWA may attract highlyskilled academic and other staff as well as students to the super university. Combination reporting analysis makes visible the roles played by universities in the deployment of allocations
References AEN (2013). Universities in Perth List. Retrieved from http://www. australianuniversities.com.au/directory/perth-universities/. AWRU (2014). Academic Ranking of World Universities 2014 – Australia. Retrieved from http://www.shanghairanking.com/World-UniversityRankings-2014/Australia.html. Burrell, A. (2013). Western Australia loses triple-A credit rating, The Australian, September 18. Retrieved from http://www.theaustralian.com.au/nationalaffairs/state-politics/western-australia-loses-triple-a-credit-rating/storye6frgczx-1226722072799.
to human resources. For Murdoch University and Edith
Curtin University (2013a). Research partners. Retrieved from http://science. curtin.edu.au/research/partners.cfm.
Cowan University, the total ‘other staff’ salaries exceed
Curtin University (2013b). Annual Report 2012, Bentley, Western Australia.
that for academics. While it is true that many of these ‘other staff’ may contribute to the research and teaching
ECU (2013a). ERA ranking of 5. Retrieved from http://www.ecu.edu.au/schools/ nursing-and-midwifery/news-and-events/snm/2013/01/era-ranking-of-5.
activities, the analysis does show that academics of
ECU (2013b). Annual Report 2012, Joondalup, Western Australia.
Murdoch University and Edith Cowan University receive
Ernst & Young (2012). University of the future: A thousand year old industry on the cusp of profound change. Australia: Ernst & Young.
only a little over 25 per cent of revenue streams. In addition, the results of the study show that three WAGo3 universities spend at least 35 per cent of their respective revenues on non-salary expenditure. Combination reporting analysis reveals that commitment to spending on administration is at the forefront of the smaller Western Australian universities. The combination reporting analysis of this study exemplifies how buildings (and land held for buildings) by Edith Cowan University and Murdoch University are of importance. Here combination reporting analysis demonstrates how small Western Australian universities may be seen as property holders with at least 70 per cent of assets held as buildings.A merged WAGo3 might reconsider whether this proportion of property holding is sustainable
Hare, J. (2013). WA unis get thumbs up from Auditor-General, The Australian. Retrieved from http://www.theaustralian.com.au/higher-education/wa-unisget-thumbs-up-from-auditor-general/story-e6frgcjx-1226643287422#sthash. ycqQXRdt.dpuf. Lane, B. (2013). Accountants’ heaven: the G07, The Australian, Oct 29. Retrieved from http://www.theaustralian.com.au/higher-education/accountantsheaven-the-g07/story-e6frgcjx. Meek, V. L. (1991). The transformation of Australian higher education from binary to unitary system. Higher Education, 21(4), 461-494. Murdoch University (2013a). Research excellence recognised. Retrieved from http://media.murdoch.edu.au/research-excellence-recognised. Murdoch University (2013b) 2012 Annual Report, Murdoch, Western Australia. Murdoch University (2014). Murdoch University Timeline: A Chronology of the University’s Growth and Achievement. Retrieved from http://www.murdoch.edu. au/vco/secretariat/records/Timeline/TIMELINE%20as%20at%2010%20Nov%20 2011.pdf.
for the academic pursuits of a much larger university.
Stanley, G. & Reynolds, P. (1994). Similarity grouping of Australian universities, Higher Education, 27, 359-366.
Acknowledgements
Turner, M. & Brown, A. M. (2013). Hypothetical: The case for an Australian ‘Group of Seven’, Australian Universities’ Review, 55(2), 44-50.
The authors would like to thank the editor and two
UWA (2013). The University of Western Australia Annual Report 2012. The University of Western Australia, Crawley.
anonymous referees for their very helpful comments on the paper.
Weber, D. (2005). Curtin ends ‘super uni’ hopes, PM - Wednesday, 22 June. Retrieved from http://www.abc.net.au/pm/content/2005/s1398317.htm.
Michael Turner is an accounting academic who has just completed his contract at Curtin University. He has also worked at University of Western Australia and the University of Southampton. vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Time for a Western Australian ‘Group of Three’? Michael Turner & Alistair Brown
65
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
OPINION
Monument to lack: The new university Andee Jones
We know less about the sexual life of little girls than boys. But we need not feel too ashamed of this distinction; after all, the sexual life of adult women is a dark continent for psychology.
pieces, but for my trouble I am merely smudged, not black listed. The present article is the fourth in an unintended series
Sigmund Freud (1932)
charting my experiences of academic censure via social
The Dark Continent is neither dark nor unexplorable. It is still unexplored only because we have been made to believe that it was too dark to be explored. Because they want to make us believe that what interests us is the white continent, with its monuments to Lack.
reprint has it (Jones, 2012, 2013, 2014). Here, in talking
Hélène Cixous (1996)
exclusion. Or ‘amicable exclusion,’ as the Vietnamese about academic censure, I touch on former psychoanalyst Jeffrey Masson’s (1990) excoriation by the psychoanalytic establishment for, among other things, criticising latetwentieth-century Freudian anti-feminism. As a former insider, Masson is famous for his warts-and-
‘You’ll have to be less critical of Freud!’
full-names exposé of the kind of psychoanalytic sexism
‘Oh?’
that would turn women’s stomachs and, more to the
On first hearing the comment, ‘You’ll have to be
point, turn them away from psychoanalysis per se. Masson
less critical of Freud,’ I was more than a year into post-
turned to writing about animals: ‘I’d written a whole
retirement postgraduate study, previously having worked
series of books about psychiatry, and nobody bought
as a psychologist and academic, retired into writing
them. Nobody liked them. Nobody. Psychiatrists hated
and, craving collaboration, returned to the academy to
them.’ In contrast, Dogs Never Lie about Love reportedly
undertake a second PhD. The department to which I
sold a million plus.
applied turned out not to be a good fit (Jones, 2014), and
But I digress.
I sought refuge in a related discipline. The admonition, ‘You’ll have to be less critical of Freud,’ comprised the bulk of the supervisory content of the first meeting proper with my new supervisor. I’ll call her Sue. Did I detect a note of fear in Sue’s voice, or am I reading too much into things, two years on? After all, how things stand now is . . . not well. Both Sue and my co-supervisor
‘You’ll have to be less critical of Freud,’ was the first of many proscriptions about my doctoral work: ‘You can’t refer to Masson; his criticism of Freud has been discredited.’ ‘But I’m citing his translation of the Freud/Fliess correspondence.’ ‘But can we take it seriously? Did he . . . ?’
were recently sacked and a supervisor who adopted me
Although Sue did not know (nor should she) of the
was sent home on stress leave. Don’t get me wrong; I
Masson (1985) translation (authorised by the Freud
make no claims of correlation (let alone causation) among
Archive), she did know that Masson’s name was not to
any of these events. Yes, I write mildly annoying opinion
darken any dissertation emanating from her department.
66
Monument to lack: The new university Andee Jones
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Masson’s was not the only verboten bibliographic entry;
Yet the presenter did not speak to it. The photographs
another was that of nonconformist commentator, Adam
bore witness to this upper echelon’s comprising, almost
Phillips. And as to the not-exactly-verboten but not-very-
without exception, post-middle-aged, middle-class men.
nice-either: ‘Our advice,’ said Sue, ‘is to omit Nussbaum’s
Mostly white. And, although the portraits did not divulge
critique of Butler. . . . Nussbaum is not a patch on Butler!’
these men’s hetero-normativity, their movies did.
Furthermore, from the academic symposium:
At the end of question time, neither presenter nor
‘Your work sounds exclusionary to me.’
audience having raised the issue, I enquired whether the
‘In what way, do you think?’
dissertation itself noted the bias. No, said the presenter,
‘You say your conceptual position is feminist and
‘[the field] is too fraught.’‘Fraught,’ she explained, referred
secular.That means you’re excluding religious feminism.’ ‘Surely,’ I wanted to say, ‘surely, scholars know the
to the risk of being shunned for academic naiveté: ‘You are universalising.’
difference between setting limits and policing borders.’
‘Surely,’ I wanted to say, ‘surely, scholars can distinguish
Was my interlocutor just point-scoring in the obligatory
a cautious generalisation from a universal claim.’ Yet
zero-sum game?
I know that is not the point. Of course we are capable
‘It’s not your place to question the lecturer (my next
of making such distinctions. The point is whether we
interlocutor was visibly upset at my visibly upsetting
prefer to belong or be exiled. Given its enormous clout,
his favourite teacher by questioning her endorsement
groupthink prevails and, wittingly or not, most of us pre-
of Freud’s theories about women) she’s spent decades
emptively hush our own mouths (Jones, 2014).
working in this field.’
The field was film studies,
One cannot help but notice that unacknowledged
specifically, film’s use of classical Freudian notions of
sexism underpins several of the abovementioned scenes.
femininity, hysteria and masochism. Despite apologist
But, then, I would say that; sexism is the topic of my
claims – ‘Well, Freud did say he didn’t understand them’
dissertation. And, despite the fact that Sue was currently
– the historical record shows that Freud clung to his
co-organising a germane conference that was short on
essentialist prescriptions for women until he died (Breger,
proposals, she went to ground. Only by accident did I hear
2000). As to another common apology – ‘Well, there are
about the conference, fortunately in time to submit a late
multiple Freuds’ – yes, and I’m writing about this one.
application that was accepted by the co-organiser. A little
Let me tell you something I know about Woman, says
later, my affiliation to the university was expunged from
Freud: When the female gives up her penis envy, ‘the
the program and I was billed as ‘independent scholar.’
appeased wish for a penis is destined to be converted
Smudged, not black-listed. After duly delivering my paper
into a wish for a baby and for a husband, who possesses a
to an audience of half a dozen, the chair remarked that
penis’ (1937, p. 251). Only by accomplishing her biological
I could have saved myself a lot of trouble had I read
destiny, says Freud, can women avoid falling prey to
so-and-so, who said it all in the 1970s. Sure.
hysteria. In a parallel universe, Barack Obama (2014), in
Speaking of the 1970s, ‘the personal is political’ still
a speech to the White House Correspondents’ Dinner,
goes. Personally, I’m fed up with being sent to Coventry
noted that any statement prefaced with, ‘Let me tell you
for pointing out the bleeding obvious. Politically, while
something I know about the Negro,’ is unlikely to turn out
academic censure by the mere threat of social exclusion
well:‘You don’t really need to hear the rest.’
has always been around, it is a hallmark of the neoliberal
At least in psychology departments, Freud’s theories on
university. The idea, in Australia at least, is to drive out all
women have been discredited to the point of annulment,
those annoying 1970s-entry, Jeffrey-Masson types who
but they still soldier on in some wind-swept corridors
should never have gained entry in the first place. And
in cultural studies. Not that I am choosing sides, mind. I
then raise the fees so high that the new ones will forego
lament the dearth of scepticism in all of their houses. As
Humanities for Accounting.
a psychologist and researcher, I don’t always agree with
In these neoliberal times, it may be a symptom of
Masson and I do cherish a few Freudian ideas, just not the
cognitive health – as well as bloody-mindedness – to be
ones about women. Or Oedipus.
censured and to resist self-censoring. But I take Raewyn
Take another example of academic self-censorship;
Connell’s (2014, p. 56) point that rattling the cage toward
the setting is a doctoral presentation on the elite players
the end of one’s career is one thing; it is quite another
in commercial film making. No clearer evidence of this
to contemplate years or decades ahead in the New
stellar group’s demographic bias could possibly be had
University – with its monuments to Lack.
than that depicted in the presentation’s portrait gallery. vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Monument to lack: The new university Andee Jones
67
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
Andee Jones is a writer, psychologist, and former academic whose published work includes four non-fiction books, one of which has been adapted for the stage, and numerous
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
Freud, S. (1937). Analysis Terminable and Interminable, in J. Strachey (ed and trans). The Standard Edition of the Complete Psychological Works of Sigmund Freud, vol 3. London: Hogarth Press.
articles in scholarly, literary, and mainstream journals.
Janis, I. (1982). Groupthink: Psychological Studies of Policy Decisions and Fiascos (2nd ed.). New York: Houghton Mifflin.
Jones’s latest books are The Gender Vendors: Sex and Lies
Jones, A. (2012). Uncapped University. Australian Universities Review, 54, 2.
from Abraham to Freud published by Lexington Books, and
Jones, A. (2013). Unhinged University. Australian Universities Review, 55, 1, 69-71.
Joining the Dots: Essays and Opinion, available via Amazon. Andee blogs at andeejones.wordpress.com.
References Breger, L. (2000). Freud: Darkness in The Midst of Vision. New York: John Wiley. Cixous, H. (1996). Sorties: Out and Out: Attacks/Ways Out/Forays, in H. Cixous, C. Clément and B. Wing (trans). The Newly Born Woman. London: I. B. Tauris and Co. Connell, R. W. (2014). Love, Fear and Learning in the Market University. Australian Universities’ Review, 56, 2, 56-63.
W
Jones, A. (2014). Neo-conned University. Australian Universities’ Review, 56, 1, 75-77. Reprinted as ‘Academic Censorship through Social Exclusion.’ University World News, 309, 28, (February, 2014). Masson, J. (ed and trans). (1985). The Complete Letters of Sigmund Freud to Wilhelm Fliess 1887-1904. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Masson, J. (1990). Final Analysis: The Making and Unmaking of a Psychoanalyst. Addison-Wesley. Obama, B. (2014). White House Correspondents’ Dinner Speech May 2014. Retrieved from http://www.whitehouse.gov/blog/2014/05/04/watch-presidentobama-2014-white-house-correspondents-dinner.
Freud, S. (1932). Femininity, in J. Strachey (ed and trans). New Introductory Lectures on Psycho-Analysis, The Standard Edition of the Complete Psychological Works of Sigmund Freud, vol. 22. London: The Hogarth Press.
68
Monument to lack: The new university Andee Jones
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Discuss: If essays are dead, then where does that leave everything else? A response to: Shirley Alexander’s ‘Buying essays: how to make sure assessment is authentic’ Kelvin McQueen University of New England
Professor Shirley Alexander is the Deputy Vice-Chancellor
rooms; or conversely allowing students access in an exam
and Vice-President (Teaching, Learning & Equity) at the
room to everything they’d need to (dare I say it?) write an
University of Technology, Sydney. On 12 November 2014,
essay; hoping for ‘ghost writer’ whistle-blowers; and, in an
an article of hers appeared in The Conversation: ‘Buying
odd association,‘high-touch, face-to-face learning’.
essays: how to make sure assessment is authentic.’ That
Contrary to this intensified surveillance of students
article traverses, in an abbreviated way, three significant
(who obviously are guilty until proven otherwise), I
concerns about university assessment tasks. Those three
find that the electronic matching software used at my
concerns, in sum, apparently render essays ‘dead’ ‘as the
university works very well in detecting plagiarism in
primary form of assessment’.
extended-response assessment tasks, if indeed that degree
In what follows, I’d like to set out and respond to
of surveillance is deemed necessary.
Alexander’s objections to the essay form. Then I’ll make
When Shirley Alexander’s essay finishes dealing with
some observations about what essays are good for
the advantages of exterminating essays to prevent students
and why, perhaps, some people can’t understand that
from cheating, then interwoven in the paragraphs that
usefulness.
follow are the other two death-dealers to the essay form:
The first concern of Alexander’s that drives a nail
the need for ‘authentic’ (or ‘real-life’) assessment; and its
into the essay-form’s coffin is that there are, apparently,
companion, meeting employers’ demands for ‘real-life’
‘cheating factories’ pumping out plagiarised or ghost-
work skills.
written essays. A search is then undertaken to find ways
Here, concerns about types of ‘authentic’ assessment
and means to prevent students cheating; ways and means
and the vocational ‘value’ of university courses converge.
of which the US National Security Agency would be proud:
Alexander emphasises this relationship by asking, ‘When,
biometric scanning; hermetically sealing students in exam
for instance, in one’s real life [read: ‘in a job’] does one
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Discuss: If essays are dead, then where does that leave everything else? Kelvin McQueen
69
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
ever have to write an essay, unless you happen to be an
job.And it is further implied that in none of these ‘real life’
academic?’ But this begs the question: what is an essay
on-the-job situations would the essay form of deliberation
and in what ways might it connect with the ‘real world’?
find any place.
And in some contrast with the unalloyed virtues of
At least in the case of teacher education, Australian
vocationalism, these ‘real world’ essays may both conform
governments moved away from the teacher-apprentice
with but also challenge what employers may suggest are
system 100 years ago because the lash of imperialist
‘real-life’ skills.
competition meant that time-honoured (read: ‘outdated’)
Essays, even brief one’s like Alexander’s, are meant
knowledge and practices were not good enough for
to be sustained, focused and coherent arguments that
nations to survive. Experts were needed to generate
systematically and explicitly evaluate relevant evidence
expert knowledge and pass it onto the next generation
and arguments.They are in themselves a way for students
of teachers. That recently some politicians have
and others to show logically their assessment of evidence
become deeply suspicious of that expertise and its
and arguments either found independently or provided
transmission is less about favouring the virtues of on-the-
to them; usually evidence and arguments that are to
job apprenticeships and more about fears of an ‘over-
some degree vital to understanding (some part of) a
educated’ (read: ‘tenaciously enquiring and sceptical’)
field of knowledge and practice. That means, crucially,
workforce.
the essay form is used as a way of becoming engaged in
Essays, or similarly extended, coherent responses, are
however neophyte or limited a way an ongoing debate
precisely about allowing students to enquire at length
about evidence, arguments and practices in some field of
about both existing and new knowledge and practices
endeavour.
in a field and then provide a reasoned and critical
So Alexander’s rhetorical question that supposedly
judgement. It is what professionals do when taking a
administers the last rites to the essay form can be
participatory role in their professions and not just existing
rephrased in the following way: when, in one’s real life (or
as well-trained practitioners without a coherent, logical or
in a job), would one have to present a sustained, focused
evidence-based thought in their heads – and, even if they
and coherent argument about evidence arising from a field
have, being unable to convey it successfully.
of professional endeavour? The answer would be: as soon
Professor Alexander obviously can convey her thoughts
as a professional moves into a position of responsibility in
in essay form; she can provide relevant evidence and
their field. And the whole point of being a professional is
arguments; she can use this skill to participate in and even
precisely to gain that position of responsibility.
lead her field, yet apparently would deny this to fellow
The tolling of the death knell for the essay form
professionals.
becomes absurd if the question is put this way: when
These ‘authentically’ trained and assessed professionals,
would an economist have to provide a coherent essay-
for example, would suture a wound wonderfully, but have
like presentation to a board of bankers; a doctor an
no idea whether the health care system, or their part of
extended review of procedures for a panel; an architect
it, is up-to-date, is functioning optimally, is beneficial for
a focused proposal for a corporate client; a teacher a
patients and / or staff, can do things differently, and so
detailed explanation to staff or parents of curricular
on. Even if they had some inkling of these issues, they
and pedagogical choices; a head nurse a rationale for
couldn’t express their sentiments in any sort of extended,
procedural variation; a bureaucrat an elaborate plan for
logical, evidence-based, coherent and critical way. In
developing or reviewing a policy; and so on, ad infinitum.
other words, they could never participate effectively in,
Shirley Alexander’s contrasting view, presented in
let alone lead, their profession.
a series of dot points (a practice I tend to discourage
Even beyond this broad (but still vocational) value of
students from using in essays), is that first-year health care
learning and then practising the fine art of essay writing,
students should work in hospitals; architecture students
there’s the value of the essay as a public intervention
in architects’ offices; engineering students undertake ‘real’
providing readable (because logical) comment; practical
projects; and so on. As always with this extreme view of
(because evidence-based) investigation; and, at the
the value of on-the-job learning (and assessment) as a
pinnacle of this, for engaging in political debate. I have my
type of apprenticeship system (and thereby devaluing
suspicions that the institutionally approved atrophying of
the purposes of higher education), one wonders how
the essay form converges with the institutional approval
these students would learn anything new or different or
of the atrophying of a willingness to engage with the ‘real
challenge the ‘received’ wisdom provided by those on-the-
world’ politically.
70
Discuss: If essays are dead, then where does that leave everything else? Kelvin McQueen
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Thus, in the micro-politics of assessing academic
certain types of academic assessment with ‘real life’; and
learning with or without essays is encapsulated something
the ritual genuflection before ‘employer-needs’ as the only
of the largest issue confronting academia: the retreat from
legitimate justification for academic programs, with those
democratic governance in our institutions. The politics
‘needs’ usually consisting of lists of ‘outcomes’ cobbled
of retreat from promoting the skills of using sustained,
together, oddly enough, by non-employer technocrats.
logical, evidence-based argument often emanates from
Exposing, elaborating, and announcing publicly a
the same quarters that have a hankering for arbitrary
sustained and critical argument with logic and evidence
rule-making (and rule-ignoring) without reference to
is what essays are very good at; and that’s what the
logic, argument or a wish to engage in sustained debate.
essay form as academic assessment and professional and
From those same managerial quarters, the legitimate
political intervention should be all about.
and indeed crucial use of the essay form as a means of expression and therefore of assessment is disavowed with
Kelvin McQueen is a lecturer in the School of Education,
arguments that show an unconscious convergence with
University of New England, NSW.
this retreat from democracy: references to institutionallygenerated fears of cheating really being an expression of managerial exasperation at being unable to sweep away student (and staff) rights such as the right not to be placed under super-intrusive surveillance; technocrats
Reference Alexander, S. (2014). Buying essays: how to make sure assessment is authentic. The Conversation, 12 November. Retrieved from http://theconversation.com/ buying-essays-how-to-make-sure-assessment-is-authentic-34125.
confusing narrow and constraining vocational skills and
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Discuss: If essays are dead, then where does that leave everything else? Kelvin McQueen
71
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
REVIEWS
The real Forsyth Saga? A History of the Modern Australian University by Hannah Forsyth. ISBN 9781742234120, NewSouth Publishing, 279 pp., 2014. Reviewed by Paul Rodan
Historian Hannah Forsyth has written a substantial
university-related consequences, as ASIO (Australia’s
account of Australian universities from colonial times
spook agency) files have demonstrated.
to the present day, dealing with the major issues and
Robert Menzies is a mostly unpopular figure with
controversies, and challenging several myths in the
Australian progressives, but only a blinkered partisan
process. Moreover, she has done so in a readable and
could fail to acknowledge his contribution to the
entertaining fashion, which had me pondering how one
university sector. His support was not all pro-humanities
with such writing skills had crept into the academy. Even
sentimentalism, as Forsyth makes clear, but he did seem
her chapter on digital technology (a topic normally sleep-
at home with the university doing more than training
inducing for this reviewer) was survivable.
for employment, perhaps reflecting his own interest in
It is refreshing to encounter a realistic appreciation of
the world of ideas. Amongst his successors, only Gough
the role of power, revealed in lines such as ‘[T]he story
Whitlam seemed to share this positive, non-instrumentalist
of universities is the story of knowledge in Australia and
view of the university.
who controlled it – and for whose benefit’ (p. 2).The early
Another myth challenged by Forsyth concerns fees
colonial institutions were clearly elite, although Forsyth
pre-Whitlam. She reminds the reader that by the 1960s, a
highlights some subtle differences between Melbourne
majority of university students received financial support
and Sydney, and the tuition-free University of Western
for their tuition fees through Commonwealth Scholarships
Australia stands as a curious anomaly. The early Australian
(and, she might have added, state government teaching
university was dual-purpose: civilising, but also about
bursaries). That a good proportion of baby-boomers had
practical knowledge – ‘gatekeeper to the professions’.
their fees paid by Menzies (and his Liberal successors) –
In the aftermath of World War I, there seemed some
not Whitlam – is an inconvenient truth for both left and
potential for a less elite student base, but Forsyth sees
right, but more so for the latter: Christopher Pyne is no
the Great Depression as killing this off; the real action
child of Menzies.
would come after World War II. Wisely, she cautions
On the Whitlam era, Forsyth suggests that the fees-
against neat ‘cause and effect’ explanations as in ‘here
related cost of his free tertiary education policy was less
is the policy, there is the effect’, arguing that ‘there are
than is believed: the big difference from the scholarship
many things going on when universities change’ (p. 21).
era was not fee abolition, but the level of student income
The development of a Commonwealth Government
support. She also sees his reforms as taking the fight out
role during and after the WWII is outlined, with Forsyth
of student radicalism, while noting that this did not deter
highlighting the emergence of research as a university-
emerging conservative student activists (such as Peter
connected activity around this time. This affords her
Costello and Tony Abbott) from tilting at imaginary radical
the opportunity to critique the ahistorical view that
windmills. The consequences seem to be still with us, as
universities ‘should look a certain way: that they always
evidenced by the endless and tedious voluntary student
have and always should look like this’ (p. 26). For those
unionism (VSU) debates (an issue not addressed by the
who came in late: the PhD was introduced at Melbourne
author).
in 1945, ANU in 1946 and Sydney in 1947. The role of
Malcolm Fraser sought to link university funding to
the Cold War in enhancing the emphasis on research is
economic goals and rein in the budget, but by the time he
skilfully covered. Of course, the Cold War also had other
moved to reintroduce fees, he had lost his Senate majority
72
The real Forsyth Saga? Reviewed by Paul Rodan
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
and free education remained apparently sacrosanct – for
intention ‘to use higher education to facilitate economic
the moment. ‘[F]ew of Fraser’s reforms were actually
change’ (p. 124) clearly apparent. A chapter entitled ‘The
implemented’, Forsyth observes (p. 100), although a round
DVC Epidemic’ discusses that and more, including the
of College of Advanced Education mergers provided a hint
casualisation crisis (possibly another epidemic).There are
to the more perceptive of what might lie ahead.
also thoughtful reflections on tensions between academic
The section on the Dawkins ‘reformation’ (as the author
and general staff, in which the author’s personal history
calls it) will include material familiar to many readers, but
as first general and then academic staff member helps
Forsyth goes further in setting the scene: it should be
provide a balance and perspective often missing from
remembered that the Hawke Government had been in
such discussions.
power for over four years, and had won three elections,
While Forsyth concedes that much is wrong with
before Dawkins released his Green Paper in 1987. Several
universities, she is no Jeremiah, and retains a guarded
egos are at risk of being bruised with Forsyth’s contention
optimism about the future. Her study of history tells her
that Dawkins’ much-vaunted ‘purple circle’ (the name
that there is no point seeking a return to a golden era
bestowed on the group of senior academics, administrators
that never was, and she is pleased that ‘[U]niversities are
and bureaucrats who met regularly with the Minister to
no longer the small, narrow, elitist male and unerringly
discuss higher education reform) played a ‘less central’
white British spaces they once were’ (p. 228). On that
role (p. 114) than the participants have assigned to
theme, she is unsympathetic to academic colleagues who
themselves, but it served Dawkins’ purposes for them to
respond to expanding student numbers by demanding
believe that they were important. Mischievously, Forsyth
that ‘schools make their students middle class (with the
identifies red wine as a key player in this part of the story.
associated ‘knower code’) before releasing them into
Forsyth sees more at play here than rampant
scholarly classrooms’ (p. 229). This is provocative stuff,
neoliberalism. There were free market advocates like
and not all will concur, but it’s surely good to have the
Don Watts and Helen Hughes in the ‘purple circle’, but
discussion.
there were ‘others with rich and complex ideas’, although
A History of the Modern Australian University is a
the description of Mal Logan as ‘the working-class Vice-
splendid book – informative, stimulating and written in
Chancellor of Monash’ (p. 115) draws a long bow. Logan
a wonderfully readable style. If there were a compulsory
was sympathetic to working class aspiration, but his
reading list for people in the sector, this volume would be
father had been a school teacher in rural New South Wales
near the top of it.
– the epitome of middle-class respectability in the era in question. Institutional mergers, the higher education contribution
Paul Rodan is an adjunct professor in the Swinburne Institute for Social Research, Swinburne University of Technology, and
scheme (HECS), research policy and related aspects of the
a member of the Australian Universities’ Review editorial
Dawkins era are capably covered, with the Government’s
board.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
The real Forsyth Saga? Reviewed by Paul Rodan
73
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
‘I’m counting on you…’ (J O’Keefe, 1961) Using Data to Improve Higher Education: Research, Policy and Practice by Maria E. Menon, Dawn G. Terkla & Paul Gibbs (Eds). ISBN: 978-94-6209-792-6 (paperback); 978-94-6209-793-3 (hardback); 978-94-6209-794-0 (e-book), Sense Publishers, vi + 263 pp., 2014. Reviewed by Dennis Bryant Thirteen papers explore data utilisation, and these are grouped into four parts: Part A:The Use of Data in the Planning and Management of Higher Education (three papers on this theme)
A second paper that captured my attention was a case study entitled ‘Using Data to Inform Institutional Decision Making at Tufts University [USA]’ by Terkla, Sharkness, Conoscenti & Butler (pp. 39-63), also from
Part B: Marketing/Stakeholder Data (three papers)
Part A. From the time you begin reading this paper,
Part C: Economics/Policy Data (four papers)
you are struck by its lack of pretence, and its direct
Part D: Ethical/Correct use of Data in Higher Education
targeting of data exploitation for the benefit of students
(three papers).
and for institutional managers. While readers would be
Based on the naming of the four parts, I felt an urgent
impressed by the huge variety of surveys that are used at
need to buy this book, mainly because the empirical
Tufts, also impressive is their use of integrated models to
researcher inside me suggested that this book was
predict student actions in enrolment, and the likelihood
immediately relevant to understanding higher education
of student success, both of which were claimed as
issues (as perplexing as they can be). The book is also
helpful to admissions offices. Realising these data were
focused, which helps the clarity of thinking that is
insufficient, Tufts also relies on benchmarking their
needed to resolve successfully otherwise intractable
performance against neighbouring peer institutions.
issues.
However, although the study’s toolset is impressive,
One such issue is institutional data readiness, a topic
I felt that they missed a logical opportunity by not
discussed from multiple perspectives in relation to
benchmarking student learning outcomes – after all, they
achieving student learning success, ensuring cultures
have surveyed the other side of the ledger, that is, student
of institutional enquiry and evidence, and helping
learning perceptions and these could be combined into
institutions help their students’ learning. This was done
a more complete picture of student success.
in Part A by Voorhees & Cooper in ‘Opportunities and
Speaking of missed opportunities, I felt that there was
Barriers to Effective Planning in Higher Education’ (pp.
unrealised potential in ‘Evaluating Students’ Quality of
25-38). I rate this paper as well-balanced, informative
Academic Life’ by Pedro, Alves and Leitão (pp. 93-118),
and highly useful to the academy. To borrow from the
from Part B.There was a great chance missed to place their
paper’s own terminology, I would say that the authors
main focus on their ‘Satisfaction of educational supply’
have provided an ‘actionable data’ crux as opposed to
variable and this would entail individually researching
‘wallpaper data’ fade. This is a must-read paper, one
each part of this multifaceted variable, starting with
which reminds me of earlier, but nevertheless informed,
teaching staff, and moving through to teaching methods,
writings by Craig McInnis (2001, p. 112; 2004, p. 391)
then onto student workload and finally onto the five other
in which he urged institutional data readiness through
facets that were combined into a super variable.
building databases such as those held by American and
The second must-read paper is undoubtedly ‘Using
European institutions. By the way, databases would
Data to Make the Wrong Decisions: The Rise and Fall of
contain all sorts of qualitative data as well as empirical
Journal Ranking in Australia’ by Dobson (pp. 229-242), in
data, but there is no question of empirical data being the
Part D. This paper begins by describing the current data-
end-all in data.
driven quest for quality (which of itself is interesting) as
74
‘I’m counting on you…’ (J O’Keefe, 1961) Reviewed by Dennis Bryant
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
a precursor to examining journal ranking as a claimed
As you can appreciate, there are other papers in this
measure of research output. If you were ever puzzled
volume for which space prohibits a review. In my selection,
(I am assuming you are a capable and insightful writer)
I hoped to choose those papers which somehow excelled
when one or more of your papers was rejected by an A*,A,
over their neighbours.That is not to say that the excluded
B or C journal, you will find this paper an informative read.
papers were deficient. You may have found positives, and
There were two papers in Part C which caught my attention because of their common theme of questioning whether higher education has a clear understanding of
inspiration, in a different selection. I would rate this book as a worthwhile addition to the actual or virtual bookshelf.
Human Capital Theory. For example, in ‘Investigating Students’ Expectations of the Economic Returns to
Dennis Bryant is concerned with identifying literature that can
Higher Education’, (pp. 149-163), Menon argues that
help expand student learning success. In this regard, he has
findings may be unreliable because economists reject the
an abiding interest in teaching, teaching qualifications and
use of student opinions about their own (the students’)
vision statements that fire staff aspirations towards increased
motivations in attending higher education, assuming
student learning outcome success.
economic reasons, only. The common theme of questioning underlying premises continues in ‘Higher Education and Equality of Opportunity’, (pp. 181-193), by Andreou & Koutsampelas who refer to students’ intrinsic reasons, such as idealism and altruism, as drivers of motivation.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
References McInnis, C. (2001). Researching the First Year Experience: where to from here? Higher Education Research & Development, 20(2), 105-114. McInnis, C. (2004). Studies of student life: an overview. European Journal of Education, 39(4), 383-394.
‘I’m counting on you…’ (J O’Keefe, 1961) Reviewed by Dennis Bryant
75
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Can’t see the trees for the ideological wood? Education, Privatisation and Social Justice: case studies from Africa, South Asia and South East Asia by Ian Macpherson, Susan Robertson & Geoffrey Walford (Eds). ISBN 9781873927, Symposium Books, 310 pp., 2014. Reviewed by Arthur O’Neill As the fly leaf has it, the Privatisation in Education
a flexible timetable and a convenient location. In sum, its
Research Initiative ‘is a global research and networking
instruction is near-at-hand, practical and concentrated on
initiative seeking to animate an accessible and informed
an occupational end.
public debate on alternative education provision’. You
Research is one thing. Teaching is quite another. Look
can find out more at www.periglobal.org and you can
at the smugness of a nearby public institution that boasts
read the 14 chapters in this book to find out what the
about its high place in world university rankings, but
27 contributors to it have to say about the significance
sits uncomfortably low, according to survey results, in
of an ever more abundant growth in numbers of and
graduate appreciations of their courses of study. If students
enrolments in private education institutions.
enrolled in the aforementioned psychology college had
‘Private’ gains its meaning in contrast with varieties
an approaching level of dissatisfaction, it would risk going
of state-legislated and -supported forms of education
out of business: which only goes to demonstrate that the
provision – what is called the public sector.The distinction
guiding hand of self-interest helps keep the college afloat
is breaking down. Many private schools, colleges and
by way of serving up instruction that is considered by its
universities are either owned by public companies (that
students to satisfy their interests.
is, businesses that are listed on stock exchanges) or by
Though concerned with primary and secondary
religious or secular not-for-profit entities falling under
schooling in selected African and Asian countries, the
the title of charity. They are subject to varieties of course
book well serves to uncover wider contests. According to
accreditation and institutional oversight by government
the editors in their introductory chapter, it will not do ‘to
standards agencies; and they obtain state funding, either
start from the premise that a priori, the idea of the private
directly in the case of primary and secondary schools
– as in private providers, private provision, private-sector
or by way of the direct transfer to them of government-
logics and so on, in the education sector – were always
advanced fees income. As the latter means of financial
and forever bad’. Instead, they say:
support to after-school providers of private education increases, government subventions to cover running costs of state-endowed tertiary institutions gets limited to the same pot. Politicians are wont to say, and economists consider fitting, that the education game is to be set on a level playing field. Lest this begins to sound like complaint about a government-promoted
downwards
slide
in
higher
… our view has been, and continues to be, that any research with claims to it being “critical inquiry” does not begin with its conclusion already in place. … we need to be open to what the evidence might tell us, and that the evidence must be contextualised. But we were also clear that any assessment of the outcomes of different manifestations of the private would need to be judged against a robust theory of social justice. (p. 10)
education, estimable people think well of many privately-
That amounts to allowing a slant by way of what is to
run courses, for they are directed to the provision of
count as robust theory; and using it to find, a posteriori,
training and qualifications that meet immediate purposes.
that the private is wanting.
You want to be a psychologist? Here is a college (one of
Happily, only a few authors of succeeding chapters
a diverse bag owned by a company) that does nothing
seem to have ideal worlds of social justice hidden in their
but offer such a product. It is certified to do the job, has
closets. Most look through glass frosted with qualification:
76
Can’t see the trees for the ideological wood? Reviewed by Arthur O’Neill
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
their evidence-based research takes them to ‘on-the-one-
empirical research leads to messy conclusions about
hand-but-on-the-other’ reflections; which is no bad thing.
private education. Even when the three authors of chapter
Take this example from a chapter on the privatisation of
12 (pp. 239-257) stick the boot into the World Bank for
basic education in Ghana and Nigeria:
abandoning principle by favouring the offer of primary
Moreover, part of the conventional economic justification for state provision of basic schooling consists of the extensive social benefits that arise from public education and the consequent failure of markets to make socially optimal provision, while it is clear that the shift towards private basic schooling in both Ghana and Nigeria is in part a response to perceptions of poor quality in public provision. Accordingly, ‘government failure’ in public-education delivery further complicates the issue of equity and efficiency, since universal access to free provision is not a marker of equity in education where that provision is of inadequate quality. Accordingly, the implications of expanding private provision for social justice are unclear. Where access to private schooling brings wider access to higher levels of learning at affordable cost, it may be argued that the trend is indeed pro-equity overall by comparison with a low-quality exclusively public system. (p. 26)
and secondary school education by private operators, they allow that: … our study exposed a large gap between the Bank’s above-described knowledge products and formal policy statements and its actual project portfolio. Most notably, according to our analysis, surprisingly few Bank operations contain private-sector provision as an objective or component, despite a decade of rhetorical emphasis and research promoting private provision of K-12 educational services in developing countries. Our portfolio review found that only 17% of project documents analysed included any support of private provision, and all such projects were seen to be in contexts where a very large and ingrained tradition of private-sector provision has existed for many years with government support. (p. 241) The policy/practice disjunction, it seems, has less to do with the abandonment of formal principle than with
Based on their interviews, authors of this chapter
the fact, drawn to the attention of the authors in their
report that ‘Parents considered that learning progress to
interviews with World Bank staff, that ‘financing decisions
be better in LFPS [a low-fee private school] and perceived
are shaped at the country level by governments who
these schools to provide for better opportunities for
often have limited interest in borrowing to support
progression in the higher levels of the public system.’ (p.
private provision, and are led by World Bank country-
40). While this suggests the wisdom of choosing horses
level staff frustrated in their efforts to pitch private
for courses, the authors go on to say: ‘But the emergence
provision or doubting its efficacy.’ (p. 244). So there
of LFPSs as an alternative may add inequality to inequity,
you have it: principle, leading in this case to ‘the Bank’s
especially if the benefits of enrolment in private basic
forceful advocacy of public-private partnerships’ yields to
schools serve to allow some students to progress more
circumstance.
readily beyond that stage, with the result that initial
The papers in this book demonstrate that principles
advantage is compounded through the rest of a child’s
of social justice do not stand alone on the high
educational career and beyond.’ (p. 41). Besides,‘LFPS may
ground. Rather, policy needs must be also informed by
also introduce a stronger link between education quality
comparative measures of efficiency, cost effectiveness,
and ability to pay, potentially worsening the relative
academic performance and investigation of reasons
outcomes of the poorest for whom such schools are
leading to selection of courses of education. While this
beyond reach’; and ‘to the extent that parents’ resource-
sounds rather wishy-washy when set against the clean
constrained decisions concerning whom to send to LFPSs
righteousness of espoused principle, a forest of ‘buts’ (as
favour more able children, weaker pupils may also be
you find in the book) is preferable to being given one
further disadvantaged in relative terms by the expansion
pathway signposted to educational salvation.
of LFPSs, while the extent of selection by ability makes
This is a good book to expand the horizons of students
it complex to disentangle the real effect on learning of
and for commentators who can’t see the trees for the
private schools’. (p. 41)
ideological wood.
The chapter is quoted at length because it conveys a realisation shared by many another contributor to this
Arthur O’Neill is both a bon vivant and a regular contributor
book: though informed by principles of social benefit,
to Australian Universities’ Review.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Can’t see the trees for the ideological wood? Reviewed by Arthur O’Neill
77
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Assessing students: do it like this… Improving Assessment in Higher Education: A Wholeof-Institutional Approach by Richard Henry, Stephen Marshall & Prem Ramburuth (Eds). ISBN 978-1-742-23400-7, NewSouth Publishing, xvi + 368 pp., 2013. Reviewed by Dennis Bryant The phrase ‘Whole-of-Institution’ in the title of this
in performing assessment and providing feedback to
print book caught my attention. This phrase seemed to
students is still seen to create an increase in the quality of
be a statement of intent, impressive in its daring, which
student outcomes, and this is two-edged efficiency. I read
in turn inferred meaningful action across at least one
on into the Faculty case studies.
higher education arena, the University of New South
The case studies were written by up to four authors,
Wales’ (UNSW) Faculties. Perhaps they even presaged an
each as specialists in one of the nine faculties. While
injection of inspiration into the long flow of published
some faculties were better prepared for change than
articles on assessment. I read on.
others, faculty responses were positive, and this positive
This book is structured in the usual way of having a Part
reaction to growth opportunities was captured in the
1 (with three introductory chapters which are effectively
concepts that they used. Some commonly found concepts
literature review chapters, and which flow rather well,
were: Lecturer workload reduction across courses
meaning that they should be appreciable to all, and were
and programs; TESTA (Transforming the Experience
written by the editors in collaboration); a Part 2 (with
of Students Through Assessment); AOL (Assurance Of
nine case studies, one for each of UNSW’s Faculties, each
Learning); QI (Quality Improvement); Curriculum review
revealing the implementation of this project); and, a Part 3
and redesign; Efficiency outcomes – to mention a few.
(containing three concluding chapters).
In summary, I found this UNSW initiative to be ground-
Normally, you could expect to skim Part 1, fly on to Part
breaking, in the same sense that institutional initiatives at
3 where you again skim but this time for confirmation,
Sydney University propelled forward lecturer certification
and finally settle into the heart of the project’s case
in higher education teaching (Brew & Ginns, 2008). Is
studies in Part 2. However, this approach would miss
there a better accommodation than the areas of student
two critical items. In the Foreword, Professor Frederick
assessment and assessment costs? This book is not merely
Hilmer equates current assessment to a ‘cottage industry’
a good read, but it would function also as a good guide to
and confirms a need for change. The second point of
universal academic reinvigoration.
note is the tone, which is carried from the Foreword on into Parts 1 and beyond. Unlike previous higher
Dennis Bryant is at home designing modest but realistic
education publications, the tone in this book is coming
metrics on student learning success, and failure. In
from the strength of a vantage point, and it is no surprise
this regard, he has an abiding interest in the success of
to find therein that UNSW has taken responsibility
institutional initiatives that assist students, and staff.
for assessment by setting up internal standards, in preference to the plethora of new governmental quality assurance agencies’ directives. The implication in taking responsibility, as admirable as it is, was not entirely altruistic, nor does it seem driven in the main by long-standing research by authors such as Biggs (1999, 2001) whose comments on the role of assessment in a university’s vision are well-known. However, the objective of driving down lecturer costs
78
Assessing students: do it like this… Reviewed by Dennis Bryant
References Biggs, J. (1999). What the Student Does: teaching for enhanced learning. Higher Education Research & Development, 18(1), 57-75. Biggs, J. (2001). The reflective institution: Assuring and enhancing the quality of teaching and learning. Higher Education, 41(3), 221-238. Brew, A., & Ginns, P., (2008). The Relationship between Engagement in the Scholarship of Teaching and Learning and Students Course Experiences. Assessment & Evaluation in Higher Education 33(5), 535-45.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Are all postgrads the same? Intercultural Postgraduate Supervision: Reimagining time, place and knowledge by Catherine Manathunga. ISBN 978-0-415-53599-1, Routledge, 199 pp., 2014. Reviewed by Helen Song-Turner This book takes issue with features of the aggressive
internationalisation of higher education. This book is
internationalisation of Australian higher education in the
written from a theoretical perspective that taps into an
past two decades, and the development of supervision
increasingly prominent and controversial niche, to make
and training paradigms that have been progressing slowly
visible and to offer transformative understandings and
worldwide (Sue & Sue, 2008). It questions whether it
ideas on supervision across, between and within cultural
makes any sense that supervisors in higher education
differences.
strive to treat each doctoral student the same, especially
The book is profound and compelling for with her Irish-
in a global economy replete with various cultural
Australian background as a researcher and writer, her style
experiences. Some of us may answer ‘yes’, and might
is sharp and even-handed in tone. She critically assesses
agree that we should treat each doctoral student the same,
and evaluates Western presumptions (labelled generally
yet a number of researchers have pointed out that current
as Northern theories and knowledge) and exposes the
supervision models are based on European and American
limitations and blind spots of taken-for-granted theories.
traditions, with traditional supervision theories being
The book provides insights to remind readers of the loss
monocultural and ethnocentric in nature (Chakrabarty,
of traditional ways of being, thinking and knowing, set
2007; Daniels, D’Andrea & Kim, 1999; Smith, 1999).
alongside the creative possibilities inherent in coming
This book examines what emerges with an increased
into contact with other cultures. Through critical review
emphasis on intercultural supervision with further
of theoretical implications of a range of postcolonial,
internalisation and widening of postgraduate education
indigenous, social feminist and cultural geography theories
(Grant & McKinley, 2011) in universities across the globe,
(labelled as Southern theories and systems), Manathunga
suggesting that current supervision theories have not
argues that time, place and knowledge play significant
sufficiently addressed issues of intercultural supervision.
roles in shaping intercultural supervision. By juxtaposing
The suggestion is that there is a need to study issues and
understandings of theoretical implications with silences
experiences involved in intercultural supervision when
and gaps in understanding, the author uses theory as a
applying traditional supervision approaches.
thinking resource to provide a deeper, more carefully
Manathunga raises a number of questions for
considered view of the complexity and possibilities of
consideration: Why is the ‘contact zone’ important in
what may be achieved in working across, between and
intercultural supervision? How could we harness all
within cultures in supervision.
possible knowledge resources facing global challenges
Of value is the author’s identification and clarification
and problems in supervision? How do we encourage
of three key pedagogical assumptions and positions of
the supervision to work towards creating significant and
assimilation, transculturation and unhomeliness that
original knowledge? And how do we locate and identify/
supervisors may consciously or unconsciously adopt in
label ourselves as supervisors or supervisees in this
their supervision processes. Eschewing assimilationist
contact zone?
supervision in the face of absence of place and other
Manathunga, a historian and passionate cross-cultural
cultural knowledge and a present-time focus in the
researcher and educator, shares her interests and personal
cultural interface of supervision, the author argues
insightful explorations of intercultural postgraduate
for a transculturation approach to situate place, time
supervision in her book. It is an area sorely in need of
and diverse cultural knowledge at the centre of the
enrichment and deepening of our understanding in
supervision process. The author stresses the supervisory
relation to current developments in globalisation and
relationship is an important factor. The insights on ways
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Are all postgrads the same? Reviewed by Helen Song-Turner
79
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
in which assimilation, transculturation and unhomeliness
you would ponder, for example, where is the author
operate in intercultural supervision provide supervisors,
leading you to? Given that studies have shown that men
researchers and students with a nuanced and critical
have a greater tendency to be antisocial and women have
understanding of their roles and their possibilities in
more anxiety, one might wish that the author had further
influencing dynamic relationship building.
discussion about the unhomely and that such gender-
Manathunga represents supervision as being designed to enhance the supervisee’s professional development
related issues may well interfere with the supervision relationship in intercultural supervision.
and she demonstrates that it often brings personal issues
Nevertheless, the book shows that amazing strides
to the surface, and that often those issues are culturally
have been made in understanding the ‘inter’ feature of the
based. She uses the term unhomeliness to refer broadly
contact zone of intercultural postgraduate supervision.
to all the cultural alienation, sense of uncertainty and
Indeed, the book honours research traditions regarding
discomfort that people experience as they adjust to
the need to explore and create new knowledge. It provides
new cultural practices. And that unhomeliness has to be
a valuable source both for supervisors and postgraduate
made visible and addressed in supervision, for because
students to expand their awareness of diverse cultures,
of it, intercultural supervision can be a complicated and
knowledge systems and stress control in building a
powerful process, leading to negative as well as positive
strong, healthy and productive supervision relationship.
outcomes.
The concept of unhomeliness itself could apply to the
The various aspects of unhomeliness, as characterised by the author, occur on a daily basis on different scales
general management of cultural diverse employees and workplace stress assessment and management as well.
between most students and their supervisors who are
As the author has envisaged, to wrestle effectively with
culturally different to themselves. As the author points
serious global problems, we would do well to draw on the
out, unhomeliness is inherent in efforts to work across
vast array of knowledge systems that all of our cultures
cultures. It hits on real issues facing people in their
have produced. It puts the reader in mind of Ghandi’s
suggested contact zone. Reading through the emotionally-
view on western civilisation; he said ‘It would be a good
charged experiences of both supervisees and supervisors
idea’. Marathunga’s book would suggest that it is time for
presented in the book, the reader is faced with heart-
educators and researchers to rethink what intercultural
rending stories, and might wish that they had read this
supervision can do make it happen.
book earlier, before taking on the role of a supervisor or a student. Several themes and concerns discerned in the
Dr. Helen Song-Turner is a lecturer in the Federation
unhomeliness such as ethnocentric attitudes, ignorance,
Business School, Federation University Australia.
cultural misunderstanding, and power distance and imbalance are similar to other concerns raised in the supervision literature. However, the identification and exposition of the concept of unhomeliness relates both to the students and supervisors are expressed and organised as convincing and effective. They are centred on time, place and knowledge perspectives, the underlying framework in guiding the investigation of the experiences and dynamics of performance in the supervisory process. As indicated by the author, this book is not a work of theory nor is it intended as a practical guidebook for effective supervision. Even so it is difficult not to be impressed with the author’s theoretical engagement and deeply personal approach in interrogating the ‘inter’ of intercultural supervision. To be sure, there are moments
80
Are all postgrads the same? Reviewed by Helen Song-Turner
References Chakrabarty, D. (2007). Provincialising Europe: Postcolonial Thought and Historical Difference, 2nd ed. Princeton, NJ and Oxford: Princeton University Press. Daniels, J., D’Andrea, M. & Kim, B. (1999). Assessing the barriers and changes of crosscultural supervision: A case study. Counselor Education & Supervision, 38(3), pp.191–205. Grant, B.M. & McKinley, E. (2011). Colouring the pedagogy of doctoral supervision: Considering supervisor, student and knowledge through the lens of indigeneity. Innovations in Education and Teaching Interntional, 48(4), pp. 365-374. Smith, L.T. (1999). Decolonising Methodologies: Research and Indigenous Peoples, London: Zed Books. Sue, D.W. & Sue. D. (2008). Counselling the culturally different: Theory and practice, 5th Edn. New York: John Wiley & Sons.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Student engagement: A marriage made in heaven? Understanding and Developing Student Engagement by Colin Bryson (Ed.), The Staff and Educational Development Series, James Wisdom (series Ed.). ISBN 978-0-415-84339-3, Routledge, 286 pp., 2014. Reviewed by Carroll Graham Improving the student experience, especially student
parts, written by three distinct categories of authors.
engagement, has become a hot topic in higher education.
Three chapters, ‘Students engaging: perspectives from
This topic, along with how universities can provide
researchers’ are based on three different longitudinal
value to students, is especially significant at this time
studies of students in three different institutions. Part II,
in the context of increasingly burdensome student
‘Students engaging: perspectives from students’, contains
fees. Student engagement is often seen as a panacea,
eight chapters, which have significant input from
underpinning success in priority areas such as student
students themselves, with five chapters written solely by
retention, widening participation and improving student
students.The third section,‘Engaging students’, comprises
outcomes. Yet there is a plethora of confusing and, at
five chapters written by student engagement staff, both
times, contradictory conceptualisations of what student
academic and professional. Finally, Bryson reflects on the
engagement entails.
earlier chapters, and projects a way forward for student
Understanding and Developing Student Engagement
engagement.
seeks to clarify the concept of student engagement, and to
Although the students in the three research studies
provide illustrations of student engagement in action.The
in Part I were diverse – in age, background and field
first chapter critiques a diverse range of interpretations
of study – one evident common theme is that social
of the nature of student engagement. Bryson comments
networks and peer support are crucial to persistence and
that ideas presented in this introductory chapter have
success. The networks revealed in these studies were not
been chosen for their insightfulness, not because they ‘fit
formal, institution-supported networks but rather those
neatly into a coherent framework’ (2014, p. 1). Through
that students developed for themselves. In contrast, two
a discussion of the literature, Bryson acknowledges that
student-written chapters in Part II focus on the benefits the
the concept of student engagement is complex and
authors gained from leadership roles in networks or peer
multifaceted. Indeed, it is the compound-dualistic nature
support programs that were initiated and/or supported
of student engagement – it encompasses what both
by their institution. Another student focuses almost
students and institutions do, and it is both a process
entirely on the importance of informal social networks in
and an outcome – which makes the concept of student
a poignantly entitled chapter ‘People can make or break
engagement inherently complex.
student engagement’. A subsequent chapter also focuses
Despite this complexity, Bryson (2014, p. 17) presents a relatively succinct definition:
on the importance of people to student engagement; in this case, tutors, using data from a student survey for
Student engagement is about what a student brings to higher education in terms of goals, aspirations, values and beliefs and how these are shaped and mediated by their experience whilst a student. SE [student engagement] is constructed and reconstructed through the lenses of the perceptions and identities held by students and the meaning and sense a student makes of their experiences and interactions.
teaching awards. Presenting an eclectic mix of accounts,
Following the introduction, the core of Understanding
theme of the importance of the transition from secondary
and Developing Student Engagement is split into three
education to first-year university, and the transformations
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
students reflect on their personal transformations using methods as diverse as video, auto-ethnographic writing, and reflections on involvement in a research project. In Part III, student engagement practitioner staff present their experiences and views on student engagement. Emerging from these practitioner accounts is a common
Student engagement: A marriage made in heaven? Reviewed by Carroll Graham
81
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
that take place in the students during their first year of
into a mature adult’ (Chadwick 2014, p. 118). As tertiary
higher education. First-year university is more about
education staff we can have significant impact – positive
learning how to learn than learning new knowledge;
or negative – on the students who pass through the doors
however, academic staff tend to view an engaged student
of our institutions. While there are many challenges to
as someone who shares ‘their own intense interest in and
practising partnership, by working in partnership with
passion for the subject’ (Sambell & Graham 2014, p. 216).
students the impact of staff can be increasingly positive.
The last chapter in this section explores the challenge of engaging both students and staff in the student
Carroll Graham is a Third Space professional who, until
experience, highlighting, as did the first chapter of Part
recently, worked at the Institute for Sustainable Futures at
I, the importance of student–staff interactions. This leads
the University of Technology Sydney (UTS), Australia. She now
into Bryson’s proposal that the way forward for student
has an honorary appointment in the Faculty of Arts and Social
engagement is through partnerships between students
Sciences at UTS.
and staff. One partnership model is the co-production knowledge through undergraduate research, while others are based on inquiry-based learning or student involvement in curriculum design. Although based on research and experiences in the UK, Understanding and Developing Student Engagement has much to offer readers of the Australian Universities’ Review. Student engagement ‘is much more than just about doing. Being and becoming are critical’ (Bryson 2014, p. 17). In the words of one student author ‘I feel
References Bryson, C. (Ed.). (2014). Understanding and Developing Student Engagement. Abingdon, UK: Routledge. Chadwick, E. (2014). People can make or break student engagement, in Bryson, C. (ed), Understanding and Developing Student Engagement, Routledge, Abingdon, UK. Sambell, K. & Graham, L. (2014). Engaging experienced students as academic mentors in support of the first-year experience, in Bryson, C. (ed), Understanding and Developing Student Engagement, Routledge, Abingdon, UK.
that I changed and developed dramatically from a student
82
Student engagement: A marriage made in heaven? Reviewed by Carroll Graham
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Fight the good fight! Bridging the Divide between Faculty and Administration: A Guide to Understanding Conflict in the Academy by James L Bess & Jay R Dee. ISBN 978-0-415-84273-0 Routledge, xx + 185 pp., 2014. Reviewed by Dennis Bryant The phrase ‘Understanding Conflict’ in the title of this
1960s and 1970s and 1980s references was overdone. In a
print book caught my attention. Inspired to come to grips
full reading done later, I felt that the authors were trying
with conflict, I wondered where the authors’ data would
to resurrect old theories, or else pad out their research.
be sourced from. As it transpired, I was intrigued but also
Either way, my inspiration to enquire further was ebbing.
slightly alarmed that they had amalgamated data from
I looked very hard to find a positive in these chapters,
four unnamed US universities, calling the new conceptual
but alas could not succeed. I blamed myself for not having
entity Discordia State University (DSU).
a strong grasp of psychology. This might seem a strange
My alarm was not allayed when two further unnamed
thing to say, but the book seemed to be very much about
data sources emerged (both US community colleges) and
the psychology of winning, and less about the chasing of
were likewise amalgamated into a second but different
a corporate vision. In fact, it was difficult to find a mention
conceptual entity, the Appreciative Community College
of vision.
(ACC).
In a flashback moment, I recalled, from page x of the
Now I understood that the book was attempting to deal
Foreword (written by Mari Koerner), two injunctions.
with four-way university data against two-way college
First, higher education institutions must have a sense
data, against a two-way organisational division – faculty
of purpose, but I was not finding purpose in this book.
(meaning teaching academics) and the rest (former
Second, a sense of purpose must override self-interests,
teaching academics, relocated to roles like Dean and
but the strong implication that came through to me
so on, and support staff) who were collectively called
was that faculty self-interests were being let down by
administration.
administrative self-interests.
I like ambition, but was this a bridge too far?
In summary, this book has seven chapters, and the first
On a theme of readers expecting consistency, the two
four chapters present the one thousand and one ways in
chosen names (DSU and ACC) evoked opposing images.
which faculty can disagree with administration. It is only
One suggested conflict, whereas the other suggested
after enduring these chapters that a positive emerges,
absence of conflict. I reflected on this difference but
when Time is suggested as a construct of relevance to
could not come to a conclusion, apart from a rising fear
Conflict.
of embedded inconsistency. Would life, as a reader of this
I would rate this book as a difficult read.
book, be difficult (I asked myself)? No time to stop and wait, I scanned on. In scanning the first four chapters, it was disconcerting
Dennis Bryant is concerned with identifying institutional impediments to student Learning success. In this regard,
to note the inclusion of a high number of figures and
he has an abiding interest in the success of institutional
tables, which was not consistent with a book of this size.
processes (such as teaching, curriculum renewal) that fire
A second disconcerting observation concerned dated
student minds to success (to borrow the centuries-old
references. It seemed clear that the number of 1950s and
brilliance of Plutarch).
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Fight the good fight! Reviewed by Dennis Bryant
83
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
The politics of victimhood Knowing Victims: Feminism, agency, and victim politics in neoliberal times by Rebecca Stringer. ISBN 978-0-415-64333-7, Routledge, 186 pp., 2014. Reviewed by Andee Jones
Note: Unless otherwise specified, references are to the eBook.
psychological, and pathological, or in the relatively
Nineteen eighty-nine was the end of history. So said Francis
atypical sense of the genuine victim of incomprehensible
Fukuyama in The End of History and the Last Man. The
crime. The former notion is profoundly depoliticising;
book read the collapse of Stalinism as signifying the global
it delegitimises the idea that victimhood can be social,
triumph of neoliberalism (free-market capitalism and
political, and collective (loc. 378).
liberal democracy), the end of history, the end point of the
Under neoliberal victim theory, says Stringer, the
evolution of humanity, and the final form of government.
ideal neoliberal citizen is one who avoids so-called
And this triumph of Western-style freedom, democracy,
‘victim mentality’ by assuming ‘personal responsibility
and free-market capitalism, so the story went, meant that
for guarding against the risk of victimisation, instead
structural oppression and victimhood no longer existed
of focusing on their right not to be victimised’ (loc.
in the post-socialist West (loc. 262).
209). Hence, the increasing economic inequality typical
‘Structural oppression,’ as distinct from the tyranny of
of neoliberalism is accompanied by discourses that
a ruler over the ruled, is embedded in everyday social
pathologise complaints against that very inequality
structures. It comprises, for example, disadvantage and
(Gurria, 2011).There are serious political consequences,
injustice suffered through ‘everyday practices of a well-
says Stringer: the majority of victim claims are
intentioned liberal society,’ including structural features
suppressed, negated, or erased. Even radical and
such as cultural stereotyping, bureaucratic hierarchies,
progressive political projects, she says, participate in
market mechanisms, and ‘unconscious assumptions and
antivictim talk (loc. 218).
reactions of well-meaning people in ordinary interactions’
What does it mean when many victims of structural
(loc. 945). Under this description, the claim that structural
injustice, together with their advocates, shun the very
oppression disappeared along with Stalinism is less than
notion of victimhood? How did the renunciation of
convincing.
victimhood become a moral virtue? The virtues of
What has the neoliberal turn in politics meant for
renouncing victimhood are extolled not only in the
prevailing notions of victimhood? How has the academy,
popular press, says Stringer, but also in progressive
or more specifically, academic feminism, dealt with the
venues in academia and social justice movements. Three
question? In Knowing Victims: Feminism, Agency, and
major features are prominent: the ‘victim-bad/agent-good’
Victim Politics in Neoliberal Times, Rebecca Stringer
formulation, the pattern of reverse victimology, and the
turns a critical eye on antivictim talk in contemporary
motif of resentment. Under the ‘victim-bad/agent-good’
feminisms, both popular and scholarly.
formulation, victims are categorised as the authors of their
As Stringer’s work exemplifies, there are various
own suffering, as having fallen victim to nothing more
feminisms, some of which overlap and others that are at
than their own subjective states of self-pity, passivity, and
odds.Throughout this review, I refer to specific feminisms
resentment (loc. 419).
(e.g., ‘second-wave’) whenever the category is what
The impression that victimhood is self-made, says
matters (e.g. to distinguish 1960s feminism from those
Stringer, is achieved by privileging ‘agency’ as the
that came later).
site of promise and implicitly making victimhood its
The rise and consolidation of neoliberal hegemony,
polar opposite (loc. 386). The ‘victim-bad/agent-good’
argues Stringer, has brought with it widespread criticism
formulation says, for example, that to regard women as
of the idea of structurally imposed victimhood. Neoliberal
agents is ‘enabling, progressive, and liberating,’ while
victim theory, as Stringer refers to it, constructs victimhood
to regard them as victims is ‘disabling, regressive and
either in a victim-blaming sense, that is, as subjective,
harmful’ (loc. 1672). Given its concerns about structural
84
The politics of victimhood Reviewed by Andee Jones
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
injustice, second-wave feminism has been re-signified as
victimology emanates from right-wing think-tanks, such as
‘victim feminism’ by neoliberal victim theory.
London’s Civitas, and authors such as Roiphe and Sommers,
According to neoliberalism, the ideal citizen either
who define victim feminism as constructing women
develops the strength of character to rise above their
as passive victims of male domination (loc. 235, 584).
circumstances or admits to being a less-than-competent
According to reverse victimology, it is feminists who are
constituent:‘Victimhood becomes a quality of the sufferer,
victimising men (though, interestingly, this claim escapes
rather than something that happens to them’ (loc. 1177,
prosecution for constructing men as passive victims).
emphasis in text). And Stringer notes the strikingly
Unsurprisingly, reverse victimology constructs second-
derisive tone of the efforts to psychologise this so-called
wave feminism as false, destructive, and obsolete,
quality as a ‘form of mental frailty’ (loc. 226).
particularly when applied to the West in the 1990s, where the feminist work of ending male domination was nigh
The myth of a feminist victory
complete (loc. 677). The theory, however, produces no concrete examples of feminists who espouse (or ever
With the global victory of the free market came the
espoused) a theory of passive victimhood. Reverse
achievement
agenda;
victimology, says Stringer, rather than providing evidence,
consequently, today’s ‘power feminists’ and ‘equity
elaborates particular examples of excess into stories
feminists’ resist feminist victim identity and align
about feminism in general (the ‘zoom lens effect’) (loc.
themselves with postfeminist agency and empowerment.
845). The authors who promulgate the theory ‘generalise
Thus goes the neoliberal narrative. The critiques of
on the basis of unrepresentative example’ and strategically
so-called victim feminism, says Stringer, promulgate a
omit ‘the discourses of agency within feminist accounts
pernicious contradiction: they stigmatise victim subjects
of victimisation’ (loc. 862). They provide no evidence of
and victim politics on behalf of a philosophic-economic
bridged pay gaps, decreases in reported rapes, and so
program that has been, for many, profoundly victimising
forth (loc. 831).
of
second-wave
feminism’s
(loc. 1486).
Furthermore, says Stringer, these authors participate in
On one side, popular-press authors such as Katie
the very theoretical position they are criticising. That is,
Roiphe, Christina Hoff Sommers, and, more equivocally,
they treat women as if they are passive victims – not of
Naomi Wolf, proclaim that, in the West, feminism has
men but of feminism (loc. 820). In other words, the ‘victim
basically achieved its goals. On the other side is abundant
feminism’ construct is sustained through legerdemain, ‘a
evidence that, even if feminism looked no further than
tailored telling’ of feminist theory and politics that elides
the interests of white, middle-class, gender-normative
feminist concepts of agency (loc. 846).
women, its goals are far from being met (OECD, 2014).
Contrary to this tailored telling, says Stringer, second-
Across the globe, says Stringer, neoliberalism’s ‘inequality-
wave feminists were ‘critically concerned with the forms
generating programmes of structural adjustment’ have
of agency available to those who experience victimisation
hit women hardest. The feminisation of poverty and the
in any of its forms’ (loc. 927). ‘The victim subject in
overrepresentation of women in low-paid, minimum-
feminist theory is more likely to be conceptualised as an
condition employment and as welfare beneficiaries have
agent in the sense of being an active subject – a resistant
intensified (loc. 1477).
subject engaged in a power struggle – than as a victim
Given that the claims of authors such as Roiphe and
who is perfectly dispossessed of agency’ (loc. 935). ‘Being
Sommers blatantly contravene existing evidence, how
a victim did not mean being incapacitated and powerless.
have they achieved such prominence? Setting aside the
It meant being a determined and angry (although not
marketing mechanisms of ‘media-courted blockbusters,’
pathologically resentful) agent of change’ (loc. 935,
Stringer’s answer lies in what she identifies as a second
quoting Mardorossian, 2002, p. 767).
major feature of neoliberal victim theory: the pattern of reverse victimology.
Hence, while acknowledging women’s structural victimisation, second-wave feminism sought to garner women’s agency and solidarity into a potent liberatory
Reverse victimology
force. Insofar as that was the case, second-wave feminism constituted a threat to neoliberal hegemony.
Neoliberalism accuses second-wave feminism of crying
Of course the second wave had its faults. Western
victim and, in so doing, of victimising innocent others (loc.
feminism was critiqued by antiracist and postcolonial
403). According to Stringer, the majority of this reverse
groups for its cultural essentialising, its assertion of
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
The politics of victimhood Reviewed by Andee Jones
85
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
the primacy of gender versus intersectionalism, and its
including the way in which negative notions of victimhood
notion of the emancipated/emaciated binary. However,
produce unjust social responses to victims (loc. 250).
neoliberal antivictim rhetoric, far from interrogating
Stringer analyses this second-order vulnerability – to
intersecting forms of suffering, says Stringer, has in fact
being wounded and then having that wounding effaced
faithfully revived second-wave feminism’s least edifying
by others and by the law – in relation to Jean-François
ideas, while resignifying its worthiest critiques, for
Lyotard’s notion of the ‘differend’ (loc. 1629).
example, of economism and androcentrism (loc. 638).
In a telling paradox, says Stringer, rather than affirming
Together with the idea of feminism itself, she says, these
women’s agency, critiques of victim feminism suggest
‘best ideas’ have undergone a discursive resignification
that women are peculiarly at risk of ‘forfeiting personal
into what Nancy Fraser refers to as ‘uncanny doubles’
responsibility in favour of passive victimhood.’ And
under neoliberal feminism.
with this Stringer shows us we have been here before: the notion ‘updates a timeworn liberal construction
Academic feminism
of Woman as of questionable fitness for the rigours of citizenship, in this case, the market individualism of
As well as critiquing popular-press renditions such
the neoliberal polis’ (loc. 663). And, of course, we find
as Roiphe’s and Sommers’s, Stringer also examines
the notion of Woman as, by nature, unfit for citizenship
postmodernist and poststructuralist feminist critiques of
embedded in the ancient Western natural-philosophical
victimhood. Academic feminism, says Stringer, occupies
canon as Aristotelian ‘science.’
a conflicted position, not only as target and critic of
Unlike second-wave feminist critique, which agitated
antivictim discourse, but also as proponent (loc. 254).
against the politico-economic status quo, contemporary
Needless to say, academic-feminist analyses, compared to
critiques of so-called victim feminism, says Stringer,
the popular-press versions, are more complex, nuanced,
‘vigorously reassert the status quo, often passionately
and heterogeneous. Yet typically, says Stringer, they
defending it against further feminist incursion’ (loc. 585).
leave largely uninterrogated neoliberal constructions
They demonstrate what has been called ‘vulnerability to
of victimhood’s alleged problematic identifications,
incorporation into the neoliberal fold’ (loc. 333). Neoliberal
attachments, and practices. Hence, feminist objections
feminism’s pathologising of resentment, says Stringer,
to the notion of the victim serve to support neoliberal
continues ‘a long heritage of counter-revolutionary
values, wittingly or unwittingly (loc. 301).
Nietzscheanism,’ which situates the source of resentment antivictimism,
in individual character rather than in external power
scholarly antivictimism, says Stringer, is no more
Compared
to
conservative-populist
relations (loc. 516). This motif of resentment constitutes,
progressive. ‘Even feminists who in other moments
under Stringer’s analysis, the third major feature of
are interested in polysemy and resignification,’ she
neoliberal victim theory.
says, construct words such as ‘victim’ and ‘victimhood’ as ‘incurably connotative of passivity, helplessness,
The motif of resentment
dependence, and innocence.’ By the 1990s, this message had gained enough traction for the popular press to mark
According to Stringer, Nietzsche’s condemnation of
the 1990s as ‘the decade of women’s liberation from
ressentiment (not precisely synonymous with resentment)
victim feminism’ (loc. 271, 585).
is a key resource for current antivictimism. Nietzsche’s
According to Stringer, as a result of academic feminism’s
emphasis on character and psychology in the question
‘lapse in theoretical caution’ and largely uncritical
of morality, she says, ‘dovetails with the individualising,
acceptance of the ‘victim-bad/agent-good’ formulation,
psychologising, and pathologising discourses that have
there is substantial overlap between feminist and
redefined and reframed “victimhood,” “resentment,” and
neoliberal depictions of ‘the victim problem,’ including
“feminism” in the neoliberal era’ (loc. 3521). Stringer’s
a diverse intrafeminist corpus that seeks to move
critical exegesis of Nietzsche’s elitist project not only
feminism ‘beyond victimhood.’ Judith Butler, for example,
provides a method for reading neoliberal feminism, but
from a position critical of feminism (yet ‘still “in” and
also foregrounds a way of locating its fault lines.
“of” feminism’), advised feminists to move beyond ‘the paradigm of victimisation’ (loc. 295).
Nietzsche, says Stringer, identifies two strategies by which the powerful diffuse the creative ressentiment
In particular, says Stringer, scholarly antivictimism does
among slaves (i.e. anarchy). While the first strategy, the
not recognise the problem of secondary victimisation,
institution of law, works to contain ressentiment, the
86
The politics of victimhood Reviewed by Andee Jones
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
second, priestly asceticism, is, in Nietzsche’s view, ‘far
of a complex mixture of feelings produced by external
more thoroughly successful’ (loc. 3970, citing Nietzsche,
invalidation.These may include unconscious combinations
2006, II, p. 11). The priest achieves ‘dominion over the
of anger, anxiety, despair, envy, shame, and self-loathing.
suffering’ and ‘alters the direction of ressentiment,’
Needless to say, neoliberal victim theory exploits, rather
inducing the slaves to self-blame, ‘by which the slaves are
than interrogates, this complex dialectics by amplifying
perfectly disarmed.’ Hence, the slaves are ‘self-disciplining,
victims’ sense of self-doubt and shame.
self-surveilling, self-blaming subjects who, in the active
Third, there is something about individual responsibility
practice of self-government, return themselves to docility.’
– namely, that every person is convinced of their own
They interpret their suffering as punishment and are
free will and of their responsibility for their choices
transformed into sinners (loc. 4053, citing Nietzsche,
and actions – that may enable subjects to accept what
2006, III, pp. 15, 20).
is otherwise a misrepresentation. And, setting aside the
Stringer analogises asceticism (as Nietzsche describes
largely academic debate about determinism and free-will,
it) with the ‘anti-sociological heuristics’ of neoliberal
this inner conviction is eminently reasonable. Even if the
victim theory. Neoliberal victim-blaming discourses, says
belief turns out to be based on a massive illusion, the fact
Stringer, are doing the work of the priest today,‘rebaptising’
is that people behave in accordance with this conviction
structural inequality, disadvantage, and discrimination as
in the same way as they behave as if they are convinced
personal failure (loc. 4091). Asceticism, says Stringer:
the sun will reappear each day.
requires the active participation of subjects in their own resignification as responsible, resilient agents and the recognition of its norms at the level of . . . everyday practice, speech, and writing, its values reverberating in established gestures for professing disapproval of the egoistic, complaining sufferer and for signifying one’s own or others’ status as self-coerced ‘good sufferers’ – uncomplaining, self-blaming and actively directing victim-blame towards ‘bad sufferers.’ (loc. 4106)
An egregious example from experimental psychology might serve to highlight the incoherence of the ‘victimbad/agent-good’ formulation. It is true that victims react to chronic victimisation in a variety of complicated, often unconscious ways, but these cannot properly be described as ‘choosing,’ or behaving passively in the face of, victimhood.Yet labels such as ‘learned helplessness’ are applied even in the case of animal victims, for example, to the behaviour of the dogs that psychologist Martin Seligman
According to Stringer, neoliberal victim theory is ‘a
and colleagues exposed experimentally to inescapable
machine for stopping complaint,’ a form of asceticism
electric shocks – eventually the dogs ceased struggling and
that, to borrow Nietzsche’s phrase, is characteristically
simply endured the pain (Peterson & Seligman, 1993).With
‘brazen and false’ (loc. 534, 4122).
its connotation of individual pathology, the nomenclature
What is it about this brazen and false ‘victim-bad/agent-
‘learned helplessness’ is implicated in the contemporary
good’ formulation that appeals to the contemporary
misuse of terms such as ‘passivity’ rather than ‘endurance’
mindset? In asking this question, I wish to put a
to describe victims’ adaptive, self-preserving responses to
biocultural-dialectical slant on Stringer’s sociological
inescapable victimisation.
analysis. Not to be confused with genetically deterministic ‘biosocial’
perspectives,
biocultural-dialectics
Of course this is not to deny that victims can be broken
holds
by their victimisers; in fact, Seligman’s findings, among
that neither biologically deterministic nor culturally
others, reportedly informed the US military’s updating
deterministic models are capable of adequately theorising
of its so-called ‘enhanced interrogation techniques’
the complexities of human behaviour (e.g. Leatherman &
(McCoy, 2014; United States Senate, 2014).Arguably, this is
Goodman, 2011, p. 5).
structural victimisation at its extreme.
Biocultural frameworks, in addition to embracing
Apropos politico-economic injustice, the 2008 global
Stringer’s analysis, would theorise the phenomenon
financial crisis, for example, in which tens of millions
of victim blaming as including unconscious defence
of people lost their jobs, homes, and savings, the act of
mechanisms: for example, blaming a specific something
seeking assistance (or, indeed, of occupying Wall Street),
or someone for damage done is less psychologically
far from signifying passivity, can be read as an active
destabilising than confronting the idea that some events
pursuit of preservation of self and community. Stringer
are beyond our control. Another contributing element
argues that in the moment of slave revolt the slaves do
to the phenomenon of victim blaming is that, while
not construct themselves as virtuous victims; rather, they
victimisation is an objective experience (e.g. being
take up political agency and contest the conditions of
discriminated against), it is also a subjective experience
their existence (loc. 3565).
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
The politics of victimhood Reviewed by Andee Jones
87
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Feminism, says Stringer, must separate itself from the
In ending on an optimistic note, Stringer’s analysis
invidious position of vulnerability to incorporation into
properly engenders a whole new set of questions, not
the neoliberal fold and instead become a site of counter-
least among them: What might it mean for victims in and
hegemonic victim talk (loc. 350). Reclaiming victimhood,
of the twenty-first century to reclaim their right not to be
she says, will involve visibly using and revaluing the term
victimised rather than continuing to be sacrificed for the
‘victim’ and consulting the anti-ascetic heritage hidden
neoliberal cause?
behind the construction ‘victim feminism.’ In Stringer’s view, this heritage includes critiquing and politicising
Andee Jones is a writer, scholar, and psychologist. Jones’s
victim-blame, critiquing the intersections of gender, race-
latest book is The Gender Vendors: Sex and Lies from
ethnicity, colonialism, imperialism, and class in the politics
Abraham to Freud.
and social construction of victimhood, and refusing the victim/agent dichotomy (loc. 4282). Reclaiming victimhood also means reconnecting feminist critique with that of capitalism and repositioning feminism squarely on the left, setting it apart from, and avoiding resignification by, neoliberalism (loc. 4299). Stringer welcomes an intersectional-feminist approach to theorising and politicising victimhood, that is, a ‘critical victimology.’ She calls for recognition and amplification of already existing feminist critiques (e.g. the SlutWalk movement) of neoliberalism (loc. 4313). Stringer’s Knowing Victims is a cogent, engaging, carefully crafted, and meticulously researched critique of the rise and consolidation of neoliberal victim theory in popular-press and academic feminism. Stringer argues – against the current tide in those institutions – that victims of structural injustice, as agentic bearers of knowledge, can use the power of legitimate resentment as a ‘generative force for social change’ by advancing a collective political agenda. Key sites of resistance to the victim-blaming logic of neoliberalism, she says, include feminist politicisation of rape, interpersonal violence, economic inequality, and welfare reform (loc. 11).
88
The politics of victimhood Reviewed by Andee Jones
References Gurria, A. (2011). Divided We Stand: Why Inequality Keeps Rising. OECD Speech, December 5, 2011. Retrieved from http://www.oecd.org/social/ dividedwestandwhyinequalitykeepsrisingspeech.htm. Leatherman, T. & Goodman, A. (2011). Critical Biocultural Approaches in Medical Anthropology, in M. Singer & P. Erickson (eds), A Companion to Medical Anthropology. Chichester, West Sussex: Blackwell. Mardorossian, C. M. (2002). Towards a New Feminist Theory of Rape. Signs: Journal of Women in Culture and Society 27, 3. McCoy, T. (2014). ‘Learned helplessness’: The chilling psychological concept behind the CIA’s interrogation methods. The Washington Post (December 11). Retrieved from http://www.washingtonpost.com/news/morning-mix/ wp/2014/12/11/the-chilling-psychological-principle-behind-the-ciasinterrogation-methods/. Nietzsche, F. (2006 [1887]). On the Genealogy of Morality: A Polemic. K. Ansell-Pearson (Ed.). C. Diethe (Trans.). Cambridge, UK: Cambridge University Press. OECD. (2014). Women, Government, and Policy Making in OECD Countries. OECD, doi: 10.1787/9789264210745-en. Peterson, C. & Seligman, M. (1993). Learned Helplessness: A Theory for the Age of Personal Control. New York: Oxford University Press. United States Senate. (2014). Senate Select Committee on Intelligence. Committee Study of the Central Intelligence Agency’s Detention and Interrogation Program Executive Summary. Retrieved from http://www. intelligence.senate.gov/study2014/sscistudy1.pdf.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Managerialism? Managerialism: a critique of an ideology by Thomas Klikauer. ISBN 9781137334268, Palgrave Macmillan, x+353 pp., 2013. Reviewed by Christopher Sheil
‘Managerialism’, wrote Don Watson ‘came to universities as
Klikauer is also correct to insist that the consequences
the German army came to Poland.’Thomas Klikauer quotes
can be diabolical. My favourite example is the case of
Watson with approval (p. 8). Managerialism went on to
the Queensland surgeon associated with the deaths of
conquer the world, says Klikauer, and is bent on destruction.
87 patients about ten years ago. The subsequent Royal
The roots go way back, but at some point in the late
Commission found that the surgeon was ‘a considerable
20th century, the idea of management morphed from
asset’. He was very industrious and maintained a high
the factory into an ideology with global ambition. The
output, ‘partly because of his careless surgery, and lack of
fate of anything that stands in managerialism’s way
proper after care’.‘Without him,’ wrote the Commissioner,
is ‘asphyxiation’ – one of Klikauer’s favourite words.
‘the hospital would not have been able to achieve its
We’re living through a period of ‘mass-asphyxiation’ (p.
elective surgery target.’ And then there was the period
276). Managerialism, the author says, ‘means the total
when trains suddenly started running off the tracks in
destruction of nearly all formerly known values and
New South Wales. Curious, I looked up the authority’s
institutions’ (p. 74).
annual report to find that none of the executive managers
Managerialism is anti-democratic, anti-environment,
were engineers.
anti-ethics, anti-thinking, anti-human. Humanity’s very
Do any managers really know what they’re talking
survival is at stake. The apocalypse is looming – ‘a violent
about these days? The problem is not so much what
and barbaric end of the empire of Managerialism followed
managerialism recognises, which is anything that can be
by a society and global breakdown’ (p. 277). So grave are
measured, but what it can’t see, which is pretty much
the present circumstances, they render ‘inactions against
everything else, including the context that determines
Managerialism a crime against humanity’ (p. 277).
whether the measures are meaningful. It’s impossible, for
Isn’t this rather over-excited? Managerialism: a
example, to quantify whether the justice system achieves
critique of an ideology could be described as a long
its purpose, i.e. fair outcomes for citizens using fair
book on managerialism, or a short book on the world and
procedures. The only means of gauging judicial fairness
the whole catastrophe, and the author certainly goes way
is by appealing to qualitative assessment by other judges.
over the top sometimes.
Similar problems are obvious in health, education, the arts,
Klikauer is correct when he says that the defining
and many areas of academic research, particularly in the
feature of managerialism is the assumption that the
humanities and social sciences. Klikauer quotes Einstein’s
differences between institutions ‘are less important than
succinct indictment: ‘not everything that counts can be
the similarities and that the purpose of all organisations
counted, and not everything that can be counted counts’
can be optimised by the application of generic
(p. 167).
management skills and knowledge’ (p. 5). By now, surely
Klikauer principally draws on philosophers and
we’re all familiar with outcome and output frameworks,
social and political theorists to make his argument.
performance indicators, benchmarking and all the rest,
Socrates, Plato, Aristotle, Kant, Hegel, Hobbes, Rousseau,
upon which resource allocation, remuneration and
Descartes, Nietzsche, Adorno, Marcuse, Husserl, Arendt,
job security are forced to turn. Surely we’re also now
Orwell, Fromm, Foucault, and Habermas populate these
familiar with the complaints. Method overrides content.
pages, along with many lesser lights. The book has 936
Quantitative measurement trumps qualitative assessment.
heavily packed endnotes. Given the quality of Klikauer’s
Simplicity refutes complexity. The rationality in each of
philosophers and the limited categories and relations
managerialism’s parts turns irrational when the system is
described by managerialism, the critique is something of a
viewed as a whole.
turkey shoot.Yet this is also a difficult book to read and is
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Managerialism? Reviewed by Christopher Sheil
89
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
unlikely to be appreciated by non-specialists. It’s neither a
could probably spend a week or more on every other
book on philosophy nor a book on management, but will
page before I was really sure that I understood what
probably defeat readers not well versed in both.
was being said. I should also mention that those hoping
The
difficulties
are
compounded
by
Klikauer’s
for straightforward guidance on the concepts and
interpretation of his material, for this is often glib and
practices that characterise real-life managerialism will be
contestable, resting chiefly on the authority of the
disappointed, for it turns out that Klikauer’s real objection
endnotes. In describing managerialism as an ideology,
is to corporate capitalism at large. In the author’s view,
for example, the author follows Chomsky (according
managerialism operates as a kind of social stabiliser
to the endnote) in defining ‘ideology’ as ‘knowledge in
for corporate capitalism. In sum, this is a relentless
the service of power’, the aims of which are ‘covering
philosophically-based polemical work, aimed at rubbishing
up, eclipsing, and distorting’ (p. 7). This definition not
managerial-type ideas broadly conceived, written from
only strikes this reviewer as difficult to distinguish from
the perspective of an author with a commitment to ethics,
propaganda or public relations; it also effectively convicts
humanism, and the natural environment.
the accused before we’ve heard the charges, let alone
‘At the heart of our problem lies the belief in the idea
tested the evidence. And anyway, don’t even the least
of single, all-purpose elites using a single. all-purpose
powerful have characteristic values and beliefs about the
methodology.’ So wrote the Canadian philosopher, John
world that could be described as an ‘ideology’?
Ralston Saul, in his contemporary classic, Voltaire’s
I don’t mean to suggest that the author’s usage is in
bastards: the dictatorship of reason in the West (1992:
error, only to stress that this work is pitched at such a high
135). Saul’s work doesn’t appear in the endnotes, which is
level of theory and generality that a full exposition and
surprising, for Klikauer is basically working on the same
evaluation would require inordinate parsing. To explain a
issues. ‘Managerialism alters the relationship between the
little further, Klikauer says that members of a dominant
rational and the irrational’, writes Klikauer (p. 267).‘It took
social class or group ‘receive the ideology in order to
us four and a half centuries to break the power of divine
create a false consciousness’, and he endorses Jaeggi’s
revelation’, wrote Saul, ‘only to replace it with the divine
proposition that ‘ideologies are the means by which the
revelations of reason’ (p. 36). The Holocaust was ‘only
predominant situation is instilled in the hearts and minds
possible through the application of modern management
of the individual’ (p. 3). Many will baulk at the concept of
techniques’, writes Klikauer (p. 110). It’s hard not to avoid
‘false consciousness’.
noticing, wrote Saul, ‘that the murder of six million Jews
Again, I’m not suggesting error, and to be sure, the
was a perfectly rational act’ (p. 16).
world is overcrowded with people trying to instil a false
Tenuously, Klikauer ends on a hopeful note, quoting
consciousness. The question is whether the process
Walter Benjamin: ‘It is only for the sake of those without
can ever be complete. At the end of this discussion,
hope that hope is given to us’ (p. 277). The issues raised
an endnote sends us to the brilliant Italian theorist of
by this book are of course important. Managerialism is,
ideological hegemony, Antonio Gramsci, who would have
by definition, based on partial rationality, which provides
never agreed that the dominant class could instil a false
no safeguard against irrationality by virtue of that very
consciousness in the subordinate. Ideological hegemony
incompleteness. But whereas Klikauer is demanding,
depends on a complex apparatus of justification and
compact and academic, Saul is entertaining, well-paced
repression, and as a matter of human respect, we would
and lucid. For those unfamiliar but interested in the
anticipate a more or less explicit ongoing reply in some
pathologies of today’s management, I’d recommend a
form from the subordinated, depending on the actual
stroll through Voltaire’s bastards before setting out to
circumstances of people’s lives, their resources and the
tackle Managerialism: a critique of an ideology.
balance of social relations. So maybe I’m comfortable with the definition after all, if I read into the concept an understanding I can accept.
Christopher Sheil is a Fellow in the School of Humanities and Languages at the University of NSW, Australia.
Overall, I’m sympathetic with Klikauer’s argument, but
90
Managerialism? Reviewed by Christopher Sheil
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Navigating your way through a professional staff career Managing Your Career in Higher Education Administration by Michelle Gander, Heather Moyes & Emma Sabzalieva. The Universities into the 21st Century series, Noel Entwistle & Roger King (series Eds). ISBN 978-1-137-32832-8, Palgrave Macmillan, 160 pp., 2014. Reviewed by Carroll Graham Reading the title caused me some anticipation. Here
readers’ comments to the Times Higher Education spoof,
finally, I hoped, was a book that addressed the issues
The Poppletonian newsletter (p. 23).While a number of
facing professional staff in managing their careers in
Australian authors have suggested that we need to move
higher education. However, the word ‘administration’
beyond this divide (see for example, Sharafizad et al.,
caused me some concern: was this a book so firmly rooted
2011; Conway, 2012; Graham, 2014), recent commentary
in the UK experience that it would be of little relevance
suggests, unfortunately, that the divide is alive and thriving
in the Australian context? Happily, I found there is much
(Thornton, 2014).
of interest and relevance for the Australian reader – for
The third and fourth chapters suggest practical activities
those working as a professional staff in higher education,
for career enhancement, through developing skills and
those considering such a career, and those (including
experience (Chapter 3) and using the opportunities
academics) managing these staff.
of networking (Chapter 4). Suggestions for skill and
As the authors comment, this book ‘is structured in such
knowledge development include gaining relevant formal
a way that you can read it from start to finish, or you can
qualifications, and undertaking continuing professional
dip into it at various times to help you with a particular
development in both ‘hard’ skills and leadership. Options
question’ (p. 8). While based on the authors’ experiences,
for gaining experience cover secondments, international
it is underpinned, where needed, by ‘research-based
experience, relevant external experience and participating
conceptual analysis’ (Entwistle & King, 2014, p. xiv). The
in professional associations. Use of existing networks – real-
book also includes several case studies that illustrate key
life and virtual – and creating your own, are discussed.Also
points, enriching the material presented.Thus, this book is
provided are useful techniques for mapping your networks,
an interesting, easy-to-read, practical guide, which is based
suggestions for moving outside your comfort zone, and for
on sound research.
managing your personal brand. While not guaranteeing
Of particular relevance to those new to working in
that the reader of these chapters will progress to becoming
higher education is the chapter on‘Working in a University’.
a registrar or deputy vice-chancellor, developing your
As mentioned above, this does have a UK perspective;
knowledge, skills, experience and networks can ‘enhance
nevertheless, there are home truths in this chapter for
your ability to do any job with a deeper understanding,
those of us working in Australian universities. For example,
enjoyment and motivation’ (p. 74).
the tension between the Humboltian research-focus
The Good Manager (Chapter 5) considers a range of
imperative and the teaching-focused tradition established
management structures as they apply to professional staff
in medieval times is still clearly evident, both in Australia
– an academic as line manager, ‘dotted line’ managers,
and in the UK. It is important ‘for those seeking to pursue
locally embedded roles with central managers, and
or develop a career in higher education administration...
matrix management – and how to make the most of any
to be aware that this fundamental tension around what
management relationship. Love it or hate it, management
universities should be doing persist[s] to this day’ (p. 14).
is a significant proportion of the work undertaken in
This chapter also touches on the tension of the ‘academic-
universities; however, many people find themselves
administrative divide’, which is clearly evidenced by
thrust into management roles without prior training. In
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Navigating your way through a professional staff career Reviewed by Carroll Graham
91
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
this context, this chapter is important for its analysis of
being brave plays a large part in the development of any
what it takes to be a good manager of professional staff
career. Finally, if you want to get straight into developing
– and is essential reading for both prospective managers
your career (or someone else’s), useful action lists are
and current managers, be they professional or academic
provided for staff at junior, middle and senior levels.
staff. The following chapter focuses on the less formal relationships of mentor and coach, and explores the key
Carroll Graham is a Third Space professional who, until
features of these different roles and the benefits that each
recently, was Executive Manager at the Institute for
can bring at different stages in your career. This chapter
Sustainable Futures at the University of Technology Sydney
discusses effective mentors and mentoring, noting that it’s
(UTS), Australia. Carroll now has an honorary appointment
optimal to have different mentors for different purposes
in the Faculty of Arts and Social Sciences at UTS to further
and at different times in your career. Mentors can also
explore issues in higher education, particularly those relating
use tips from this chapter to enhance their mentoring
to staff matters.
skills. The discussion of coaching includes coaching by line managers and how to make coaching work for you. Again, coaches will benefit from the advice provided here; however, importantly – as coaching puts the coachee in the driver’s seat – there is a section on how to be a good coachee. The final chapter considers how to define a successful career as a professional staff member, commenting on both intrinsic and extrinsic success. To illustrate possible career paths, the three authors provide their own career maps. As I have found, these examples highlight the need for consistent changing of roles, combined with significant levels of professional development, for career progression.
References Conway, M. (2012). Using causal layered analysis to explore the relationship between academics and administrators in universities. Journal of Futures Studies, 17(2), 37–57. Entwistle, N. & King, R. (2014). Series Editors’ Preface, in M. Gander, H. Moyes, & E.Sabzalieva. (2014). Managing Your Career in Higher Education Administration, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Graham, C. (2014). Another matrix revolution? The overlap of university work. Australian Universities’ Review, 56(1), 67–69. Sharafizad, F., Paull, M. & Omari, M. (2011). Flexible work arrangements. Australian Universities’ Review, 53(2), 43–49. Thornton, M. (Ed.). (2014). Through a glass darkly: The social sciences look at the neoliberal university. Canberra: ANU Press.
Likewise, I agree with the authors that serendipity and
92
Navigating your way through a professional staff career Reviewed by Carroll Graham
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Education: A ghost story Capitalism: A Ghost Story by Arundhati Roy. ISBN: 978-1608464-385-5 (pb), 125 pp., Haymarket Books, 2014. Reviewed by Thomas Klikauer
After The God of Small Things and winning the Man
than twenty Indian rupees a day’.Arundahti Roy’s ‘making
Booker Prize (1997) and the Sydney Peace Prize (2004),
way for us’ indicates valid self-criticism because he
Haymarket Books has published Arundahti Roy’s latest
belongs to the 300 million middle-class that ‘buys things
book Capitalism: a Ghost Story. This work is on a par
it doesn’t need with money it doesn’t have to impress
with Michael Moore’s Capitalism: a Love Story (2009),
people most don’t even like’. All this is engineered under
Achbar & Abbott’s The Corporation: The Pathological
the hallucinogenic and ideological self-deception of ‘one
Pursuit of Profit and Power (2003), Benson & Kirsch’s
plasma-screen makes you happy – two plasma-screens
seminal article on ‘Capitalism and the Politics of
make you twice as happy’.
Resignation’ (2010), Freyenhagen’s illuminating critique
Elsewhere as in India the petit-bourgeois middle class
of capitalism (on: ‘Adorno’s practical philosophy’ 2013 p.
has also been hit by the twin ideologies of managerialism
26-52), John Pilger’s A Secret Country (2010), Klein’s This
(Klikauer, 2013) and neoliberalism when ‘after twenty-
Changes Everything (2014) and probably most of what
years of growth, 60 per cent of India’s workforce is self-
Noam Chomsky wrote during the last ten or so years.
employed, and 90 per cent of India’s labour force works
Arundahti Roy’s book also explains the background to
in the unorganised sector’. The global casualisation of
the recent visit to Australia of Indian Prime Minister, the
the workforce marches on increasingly unhindered
BJP party’s Narendra Modi (www.theguardian.com 17th
by disturbances such as those of trade unions, social
Nov. 2014). It also explains the role of The BJP party and
movements, and radical political parties set against
the government of India and gives some pretty clear
von Hayek’s political catechism of neoliberalism, as
indication how the affluence and opulence of some
well as managerialism. When scanning publications for
exists in the face of massive poverty by others. The steel
‘managerialism’ one gets the distinct impression that
magnate Lakshmi Mittal’s niece’s wedding reportedly
universities are areas of prime infestation. Meanwhile
‘cost
million’ (www.forbes.com, 12/17/2013).
protest against neoliberalism is framed as a form of
Meanwhile, the World Food Programme (wfp.org/
madness just as Marcuse had outlined so brilliantly in his
countries/india) reports ‘the country is home to a
The One-Dimensional Society (1966).
$82
quarter of all undernourished people worldwide’. While
Meanwhile in India, one of the government’s fights
Roy’s book explains what is done so that the rich stay
against a most prevalent anti-government protest is framed
rich and the poor stay poor, it also makes an insightful
as ‘operation green hunt’ designed ‘to flush the rebels out
contribution to education under capitalism ideologically
of the forest … in India we don’t call this war. We call
flanked by neoliberalism and capitalism.
it ‘Creating a Good Investment Climate’ [and for that the
To undertake this, Arundahti Roy’s starts with a short
state gave] the army legal impunity and the right to kill
discussion of the 2010 Commonwealth Games held
on suspicion’. To some, this might carry connotations to
in India on which Arundahti Roy notes, ‘in the drive to
a police state or military dictatorship – something rather
beautify Delhi for the Commonwealth Games, laws were
unexpected for a country that prides itself to be ‘the
passed making the poor vanish like laundry stains…
world’s greatest democracy’. But in the wake of keeping
the slums that remained were screened off, with vinyl
the poor in their place, ‘recently, Soni Sori, an Adivasi
billboards that said ‘DELHIciously Yours’ … the games were
schoolteacher from Bastar, was arrested and tortured in
a success’. But ‘the ghost story’ really begins with India’s
police custody’. The gruesome details are in Roy’s book.
300 million strong middle-class flanked by ‘the ghosts of
In the end ‘Soni Sori remains in jail, while Ankit Garg,
250,000 debt-ridden farmers who have killed themselves,
the superintendent of the police who conducted the
and of the 800 million who have been impoverished and
interrogation, was conferred the President’s Police Medal
dispossessed to make way for us, and who survive on less
for Gallantry on Republic Day’, perhaps under the motto:
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Education: A ghost story Reviewed by Thomas Klikauer
93
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
‘torture-equals-gallantry’. But incidents like these explain
workers – formerly known as lecturers and professors.
the huge public outcry when women in India are violated,
Many of them operate strict ‘Mushroom Management’ –
raped, and murdered – even by the state.
keep them in the dark and feed them sh***! But there
In order to keep the oppressed subjugated, the Indian
is also a horizontal task-based and highly standardised
state very early on relied on US help. According to Roy,
division when, for example, the reading syllabus
its choice was the RAND Corporation that invented the
became nothing more than ‘SOS’ – a standard operation
infamous prisoner dilemma. It is one of the prime fighting
sheet used in the car industry to organise the average
agencies of the USA ‘to thwart the persistent communist
55-second cycle time of a car worker.All this is organised
effort to penetrate and disrupt the free nation’. But
as a seamless flow where – just as Ford says – the product
coercive measures (the stick) have always been paralleled
(student) moves down the assembly line with a quality
by the carrot as well when more elaborate measures
check at the end called final examination. It is just as
appeared. This came when ‘the department store owner
General Motors’ boss once said ‘the point is that General
Edward Filene’ supported mass-consumerism through
Motors is not in business to make cars, but to make
‘affordable credits – a radical idea at the time’. Capitalism
money’. Perhaps the ‘point of the neoliberal-managerial
quickly seized on this by giving ‘affordable loans of tens
university is not to educate students, but to make money
of millions of dollars to working people, turning the US
through the sale of degrees’.
working class into people who are permanently in debt,
Roy continues with ‘those who could not afford the
running to catch up with lifestyle. Many years later, this
fees were given scholarships.Today in countries like India
idea has trickled down to the impoverished countryside
and Pakistan there is scarcely a family among the upper-
of Bangladesh when Mohammed Yunus and the Grameen
middle class that does not have a child who has studied
Bank brought micro-credits to starving peasants with
in the US [and Great Britain, Australia, etc. TK]. From their
disastrous consequences’. Micro-credits are ‘responsible
ranks have come good scholars and academics but also the
for hundreds of suicides – a suicide note by an eighteen-
prime ministers, finance ministers, economists, corporate
year-old girl [said] ‘work hard and earn money. Do not
lawyers, bankers, and bureaucrats who helped to open up
make loans’. Perhaps one not only gets the Nobel Peace
the economies of their countries to global corporations.
Prize for drone killings but also for something like that.
Scholars of the foundation-friendly version of economics
Roy continues with ‘like all good imperialists, the
and political science were rewarded with fellowships,
Philanthropoids set themselves the task of creating and
research funds, grants, endowments, and jobs. Those with
training an international cadre that believes that capitalism,
foundation-unfriendly views found themselves unfunded,
and by extension, the hegemony of the US, was in their
marginalised, and ghettoised, their courses discontinued.
own interest [and] the CIA and US State Department
Gradually, one particular imagination – a brittle, superficial
continue to work with students and professors in US
pretence of tolerance and multiculturalism (that morphs
universities, raising serious questions about the ethics of
into racism, rapid nationalism, ethnic chauvinism or
scholarship’. Perhaps it is not scholarship but ‘knowledge
warmongering Islamophobia at a moment’s notice) under
in the service of power’ more commonly known as
the roof of a single, overarching, very unplural economic
ideology (e.g. Therborn’s ‘ideology of power’, 1988). But
ideology – began to dominate the discourse. It did so
Roy also notes that
to such an extent that it ceases to be perceived as an
... corporate-endowed foundations are the biggest founders of the social science and the arts, endowing courses and student scholarships in development studies, community studies, cultural studies, behavioural science, and human rights. As US universities opened their doors to international students, hundreds of thousands of students, children of the Third World elite, poured in. But the children of developing nations’ elites not
ideology at all. It became the default position, the natural way to be. It infiltrated normality, colonised ordinariness, and challenging it began to seem as absurd or as esoteric as challenging reality itself. From here it was a quick, easy step to ‘There Is No Alternative’ popularised by Apartheidand
Pinochet-loving
Margaret Thatcher
(news.bbc.
co.uk/2/hi/304516). But
neoliberalism’s
political
ideology
of
‘the
only poured into US universities, they also make up a
privatisation of everything’ has also meant the NGO-
substantial part of Australia’s ‘educational industry’. An
isation of Everything. As jobs and livelihoods disappeared,
industry it is indeed, with the mass-manufacturing of
NGOs have become an important source of employment.
degrees based on a vertical Tayloristic division of labour
They work like transmitters, receivers, shock absorbers,
setting university management against educational
alert to the very impulse, careful never to annoy the
94
Education: A ghost story Reviewed by Thomas Klikauer
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
government of their host country … Armed with their
But ‘David Busamian is not the first person to be
billions, these NGOs have waded into the world, turning
deported over the Indian Government’s sensitivities over
potential revolutionaries into salaried activists, funding
Kashmir. Professor Richard Shapiro, an anthropologist
artists, intellectuals, and filmmakers, gently luring them
from San Francisco, was deported from Delhi airport in
away from radical confrontation, ushering them in the
November 2010 without being given any reason. Most
direction of multiculturalism, gender equity, community
of us believe it was the Government’s way of punishing
development – the discourse couched in the language of
his partner Angana Chatterji, a co-convenor of the
identity politics and human rights’.
International People’s Tribunal on Human Rights and
Meanwhile, ‘Indian poverty, after a brief period in the
Justice, which first brought international attention to the
wilderness while India ‘shone’, has made a comeback as
existence of unmarked mass graves in Kashmir … while
an exotic identity in the arts, from the front by films like
the government goes about trying to silence the living,
Slumdog Millionaire. These stories about the poor, their
the dead have begun speaking’.To stop that,‘all resistance,
amazing spirit and resilience, have no villains – except
armed as well as unarmed, has been branded ‘Maoist.’
the small ones who provide narrative tensions and local
In Kashmir the preferred phrase is ‘jihadi elements’.
colour. The authors of these works are the contemporary
Roy concludes with ‘the idea of dreaming of equality
world’s equivalent of the early anthropologists, lauded
became blasphemous. ‘We are not fighting to tinker with
and honoured for working ‘on the ground’, for their
reforming a system that needs to be replaced’. Just as the
brave journeys into the unknown. You rarely see the
German philosopher Adorno once said ‘there can be no
rich being examined in these ways’. ‘Having worked out
way of living a false life correctly’ – not in India, not in
how to manage governments, political parties, elections,
Australia, and certainly not in education.
courts, the media, and liberal opinions, the neoliberal establishment faces one more challenge:
Thomas Klikauer teaches postgraduate students in
• How to deal with growing unrest, the threat of ‘peoples’
‘Contemporary People Management’(HRM) at the University of
power.’ • How do you domesticate it?
Western Sydney and has published a book, Managerialism: a critique of an ideology, reviewed in this issue of AUR.
• How do you turn protesters into pets? • How do you vacuum up peoples’ fury and redirect it into blind alleys?’ Perhaps one way of achieving this is by simply removing critics from the scene. A more recent case in Roy’s book is that of US radio journalist David Barsamian working for public radio and ‘publishing book length interviews with Edward Said, Noam Chomsky, Howard Zinn, Ejaz Ahmed, and Tariq Ali’. In Barsamian’s case, the Indian state sought to silence knowledge about its occupation of Kashmir. To achieve that the state did the following:‘taking over under the shabby old banner of the War on Terror, the Home Ministry has decreed that scholars and academics invited for conferences or seminars require security clearance
References Achbar, M. & Abbott, J. (2003). The Corporation: The Pathological Pursuit of Profit and Power (DVD 145 min), Toronto: Big Picture Media Corporation. Benson, P. & Kirsch, S. (2010). Capitalism and the Politics of Resignation, Current Anthropology, 51, 4, pp. 459-486. Freyenhagen, F. (2013). Adorno’s practical philosophy: living less wrongly, New York: Cambridge University Press. Klein, N. (2014). This Changes Everything: Capitalism vs. the Climate, London: Penguin. Klikauer, T. (2013). Managerialism – Critique of an Ideology, Basingstoke: Palgrave. Marcuse, H. (1966). One-dimensional man: studies in the ideology of advanced industrial society, Boston: Beacon Press.
before they will be given visas. Corporate executives and
Moore, M. (2009). Capitalism – A Love Story, New York: The Weinstein Film Company.
businessmen do not. So somebody who wants to invest
Pilger, J. (2010). A Secret Country, London: Random House.
in a dam or build a steel plant or buy a bauxite mine is not considered a security hazard, whereas a scholar
Therborn, G. (1988). The ideology of power and the power of ideology, London: Verso.
who might wish to participate in a seminar about, say, displacement or communalism, or rising malnutrition in a globalised economy, is’.
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Education: A ghost story Reviewed by Thomas Klikauer
95
A
U S T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U N
I
V
E R
S I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E V
I
E
W
Veni, vidi, vici The Wit of Whitlam by James Carleton (Ed.). ISBN 9780522868081 (paperback), 9780522868098 (eBook), Melbourne University Publishing, 224 pp., 2014. Reviewed by Paul Rodan
This collection, compiled by James Carleton (son of the
As Whitlam’s genius speech-writer Graham Freudenberg
late political journalist Richard) is the second book with
points out in the preface to the book, the great man took
this title, the first having been assembled by Deane Wells
seriously his obligation to make Australians laugh: it was ‘a
in 1976. Gough Whitlam himself was keen to distinguish
duty which came with political office’ (p. vii). And, while
between being ‘witty’ and ‘funny’. He was adamant that
it was often lost on the obtuse, sending himself up was
he was the former (or ‘epigrammatic’); being ‘funny’ was
an intrinsic part of the Whitlam routine: the tall poppy
for clowns, and no-one could ever accuse the great man
pricking his own pretensions.
of that.
On receiving then Governor-General Quentin Bryce
Many of the quotations will be well-known; others less
into his Sydney office,Whitlam (then in his 90s) could quip
so. Gough could be vulgar, as in responding to a rustic
‘I always get nervous when I’m meeting with a Governor-
MP’s ‘I’m a Country member’ with ‘We remember’ (p. 32),
General’ (p. 166), and who could top his backhanded
but there was never vulgarity for its own sake. Wit can be
compliment when asked for a positive comment about
vulgar, but not all vulgarity is wit – a point which seems
Prince Philip, Duke of Edinburgh, who had been reported
lost on many plying the comedic trade today.
as holding less than flattering views on Whitlam: ‘He
Whitlam’s classical education afforded him a vast
married well’ (p. 106).
treasure trove from which to select individuals or events to
The book is a very enjoyable read and demonstrates
make a contemporary point. Nor was his history restricted
just what a class act Whitlam was. Among other Australian
to the ancient, as he demonstrated when Coalition Prime
prime ministers, only the conservative Robert Menzies
Minister Billy McMahon announced 2 December as the
has enjoyed a comparable reputation for mastery of the
date for the 1972 federal election. Noting that this was the
spoken word, and a similar volume to the one under
anniversary of the Battle of Austerlitz, and anticipating his
review (albeit slimmer) – The Wit of Menzies – appeared
own election victory, Whitlam observed that the date was
in 1966. While political predictions are notoriously risky,
one on which a crushing defeat had been administered to
this reviewer can assert with reasonable confidence that
‘a ramshackle, reactionary coalition’ (p. 30).
neither The Wit of Abbott nor The Wit of Shorten will ever
Whitlam’s love of language lead to an enduring
grace the shelves of any bookshop.
friendship with Liberal MP Jim Killen, with each taking the parliamentary piss out of the other in erudite and
Paul Rodan is an adjunct professor in the Swinburne Institute
witty style, some of which is captured in this collection.
for Social Research at Swinburne University of Technology,
The two men would exchange notes (often in Latin) on
Melbourne, and a member of the Australian Universities’
the floor of the House, a practice utterly unimaginable
Review editorial board.
today for two reasons: the apparent lack of mutual respect and affection between opponents and the inability of many to write in witty English, let alone Latin!
96
Veni, vidi, vici Reviewed by Paul Rodan
vol. 57, no. 1, 2015
Life is easier with your member benefits
NTEU members now enjoy a new benefit! NTEU members now have access to some of the best electronics with JB Hi-Fi. Enjoy great savings on a range of products, including white goods, computing, tablets, software, telecommunications, panels and displays, audio visual, networking solutions, printing, photography, coffee machines, small appliances and air conditioners. The JB Hi-Fi member benefits portal never sleeps, allowing you access to great offers 24 hours a day, 7 days a week.
For more information:
1300 853 352 | www.nteu.org.au/benefits
THEIR FIGHT IS OUR FIGHT.
Dignified and decent work, hard won and defended by Australian workers and their unions, is still being fought for by our partners in developing countries around the world.
Union Aid Abroad-APHEDA needs more new monthly donors in our Global Justice Partner program, to enable people, like the Cambodian beer workers in this image, to lift themselves out of poverty by organising for and achieving decent work.
Become a Global Justice Partner today. Union Aid Abroad APHEDA Call 1800 888 674 or visit www.apheda.org.au The overseas humanitarian aid agency of the ACTU Union Aid Abroad-APHEDA was established in 1984 to express the Australian union movementâ&#x20AC;&#x2122;s commitment to social justice and international solidarity for human rights and development.
We do this through support for adult-focused education, training and development projects overseas, working in partnership with those whose rights to development are restricted or denied. You can show your solidarity by becoming a Global Justice Partner and making a tax deductible monthly contribution to our work.
30 years
of solidarity
Since 1984
www.aur.org.au Since 1958, Australian Universities’ Review has been encouraging debate and discussion about issues in higher education and its contribution to Australian public life.
AUR
aur
Volume 49, Numbers
AUSTRAL IAN UNI VERSITI ES REVI EW
AUSTRALIA
ISSN 0818-8068
1 & 2, 2007
The future face The crisis in our
The Humaniti
es: the poor
of higher educatio
universities:
n
who’s to blame?
relations of innovatio
How not to fund
N UNIVERSIT
n policy
teaching and
learning
IES REVIEW PUBLISHED
The Howard Era – In Retrospect?
Higher Education Policy’s Groundhog So farewell, Mr Robin Days son: The Monas h plagiarism debac le
ISSN 0818-8068
Volume 46, Number
2, 2004 Published by
NTEU
Want to receive your own copy of Australian Universities’ Review (AUR)? AUR is published by the National Tertiary Education Union (NTEU) twice a year. NTEU members are entitled to receive a free subscription on an opt-in basis – so you need to let us know. If you are an NTEU member and would like to receive your own copy of AUR, send us an email at aur@nteu.org.au. Subscription rates for non-members are available at www.aur.org.au. If you would like to become a member of NTEU, contact the local Branch office at your institution, or join online at www.nteu.org.au/join.
BY NTEU